FILM
REMAKES
CONSTANTINE VEREVIS
Film Remakes
‘In this groundbreaking study, Constantine Verevis explores an aspect of
commercial film production interesting to the scholar and movie enthusiast alike: remaking. Film Remakes can be profitably viewed from a number
of perspectives, and this book provides an intriguing and revealing
anatomy of the phenomenon. Verevis writes with verve and insight; an
important feature of Film Remakes is the series of individual analyses that
sparkle with revealing and intelligent comment as they clarify general
points about remaking. Though theoretically informed, this book is wonderfully accessible to the general reader.’
R. Barton Palmer,
Calhoun Lemon Professor of Literature at Clemson University
Film Remakes
Constantine Verevis
Edinburgh University Press
© Constantine Verevis, 2006
Edinburgh University Press Ltd
22 George Square, Edinburgh
Typeset in 11/13 Ehrhardt
by Servis Filmsetting Ltd, Manchester, and
printed and bound in Great Britain by
MPG Books Ltd, Bodmin, Cornwall
A CIP record for this book is available from the British Library
ISBN 0 7486 2186 5 (hardback)
ISBN 0 7486 2187 3 (paperback)
The right of Constantine Verevis
to be identified as author of this work
has been asserted in accordance with
the Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988.
Contents
Preface
Acknowledgements
Introduction: Remaking Film
vii
ix
1
Part I Remaking as Industrial Category
1 Commerce
37
2 Authors
58
Part II Remaking as Textual Category
3 Texts
4 Genres
81
105
Part III Remaking as Critical Category
5 Audiences
129
6 Discourse
151
Conclusion: Remaking Everything
173
References
Index
179
195
Preface
I see an endless film with sequences signed by various authors in a
complex game of quotations, influences, remakes, variations and references.
(Bernardo Bertolucci, in Ungari, 1987)
This book seeks to provide a broad and systematic approach to the phenomenon of cinematic remaking. Drawing upon recent theories of genre
and intertextuality, Film Remakes describes remaking as both an elastic
concept and a complex situation, one enabled and limited by the interrelated roles and practices of industry, critics and audiences. This approach
to remaking, outlined in the book’s introduction, is developed across its
three parts. The first of these, Remaking as Industrial Category, deals with
issues of production, including commerce and authors; the second,
Remaking as Textual Category, considers genre, plots and structures; and
the third, Remaking as Critical Category, investigates issues of reception,
including audiences and institutions. The film remake emerges from this
discussion as a particular case of repetition, a function of cinematic and
discursive fields that is maintained by historically specific practices, such
as copyright law and authorship, canon formation and media literacy, film
criticism and re-viewing. That is, while cinematic remaking belongs to the
entire history of cinema and can refer to any number of technological,
textual and cultural practices, this book contributes to an understanding of
how the film remake is maintained as a separate yet connected phenomenon.
Film Remakes seeks to address some of the central critical issues around
the concept of remaking, striving to deliver a broad theoretical approach to
provide both an understanding of the phenomenon of cinematic remaking
and of individual film remakes. This book takes an interest primarily in the
industrial and institutional conditions of remaking in contemporary
Hollywood cinema, and acknowledges that more and different work needs
viii
to be undertaken through comparative studies that reach across other
historical moments, national cultures and cross-cultural transactions.
Additionally, this book seeks to introduce a wide readership to the concept
of cinematic remaking and to the various issues – industrial, textual and
critical – attending it. Accordingly, it works to provide an overview of existing approaches, to simplify theoretical concerns and to make its arguments
through well-known and readily available film examples. Finally, the ideas
presented in Film Remakes have been developed in a number of places and
with the assistance and support of many people. In particular I would like
to thank: Paul Coughlin, Sarah Edwards, John Frow, Matt Holden, Sonya
Jeffery, Jane Landman, Julie Palmer, Barton Palmer, Lesley Stern and
Deane Williams.
Acknowledgements
Material contributing to this book appeared in earlier versions in the following publications and is reprinted here with the permission of the
editors.
1. ‘Through the Past Darkly: Noir Remakes of the 1980s’, in Alain Silver
and James Ursini (eds), Film Noir Reader 4. New York: Limelight, 2004,
pp. 307–22.
2. ‘Remaking Film’, Film Studies, no. 4 (2004), pp. 87–103.
3. ‘Television Features: A Survey’, Metro, no. 123 (2000), pp. 34–41.
4. ‘Re-Viewing Remakes’, Film Criticism, vol. 21, no. 3 (1997), pp. 1–19.
For Julie, Zoi and Mia
And in memory of Emmanuel and Irene Verevis
Introduction: Remaking Film
This book provides a broad introduction to some of the issues and concerns arising from the concept of film remaking. Although the cinema has
been repeating and replaying its own narratives and genres from its very
beginnings, film remaking has received little critical attention in the field
of cinema studies. What is film remaking? Which films are remakes of
other films? How does film remaking differ from other types of repetition,
such as quotation, allusion and adaptation? What is the relationship
between remakes and other commercial forms such as sequels, cycles and
series? How is film remaking different from the cinema’s more general
ability to repeat and replay the same film over and again through reissue
and redistribution? And how does remaking differ from the way every film
is ‘remade’ – dispersed and transformed – in its every new context or
re-viewing? These are questions that have seldom been asked, let alone satisfactorily answered, in cinema studies.
Recent accounts of cinematic remaking have variously defined film
remakes as ‘films based on an earlier screenplay’,1 as ‘new versions of existing films’2 and as ‘films that to one degree or another announce to us that they
embrace one or more previous movies’.3 Although there may be sufficient
cultural agreement on the existence and nature of film remakes to allow for
a clear understanding – especially in the case of those remakes which carry
a pre-sold title and repeat readily recognisable narrative units – when
considered alongside the broader concept of intertextuality, film remaking
can refer to ‘the infinite and open-ended possibilities generated by all the
discursive practices of a [film] culture’.4 As David Wills points out, ‘what
distinguishes the remake is not the fact of its being a repetition, [but] rather
the fact of its being a precise institutional form of the structure of repetition, . . . the citationality or iterability, that exists in and for every film’.5
As in the case of film genre, a fundamental problem for film remaking
has arisen from ‘the ever-present desire for a stable and easily identifiable
2
[set of] objects of analysis’, and a related attempt to reduce film remaking
to a ‘corpus of texts’ or set of textual structures.6 Such approaches often
succumb to the problems of taxonomism and associated difficulties, such
as the exclusion of marginal examples and canonisation of favourites. In
addition, these textual accounts of remaking risk essentialism, in many
instances privileging the ‘original’ over the remake or measuring the
success of the remake according to its ability to realise what are taken to
be the essential elements of a source text – the property – from which
both the original and its remake are derived.7 While there is often
sufficient semantic and syntactic evidence to suggest that remakes are
particular textual structures, film remakes (like genres) ‘exist always in
excess of a corpus of works’.8 Film remaking depends, too, ‘on the existence of audience activity’, not only prior knowledge of previous texts and
intertextual relationships, but an understanding of broader generic structures and categories.9 In addition to this, film remaking is both enabled
and limited by a series of historically specific institutional factors, such as
copyright law, canon formation and film reviewing which are essential to
the existence and maintenance – to the discursivisation – of the film
remake.10 In these ways, film remaking is not simply a quality of texts or
viewers, but a ‘by-product’ or the secondary result of broader discursive
activity.11
This chapter refers to several books and essays dealing directly with
‘film remakes’ and (more broadly) the concept of ‘remaking film’, from
Michael B. Druxman’s early survey of film remakes, Make It Again, Sam
(1975), through to more recent theorisations of remaking in anthologies
such as Andrew Horton and Stuart Y. McDougal’s Play It Again, Sam
(1998) and Jennifer Forrest and Leonard R. Koos’s Dead Ringers (2002).
A number of key points developed here have been made (differently) by
John Frow and Lesley Stern in their work on intertextuality12 and remaking13 respectively, and also in their reviews of the Horton and McDougal
anthology.14 In addition, this account of remaking draws upon Rick
Altman’s Film/Genre (1999), developing from that book the idea that,
although film remakes (like genres) are often ‘located’ in either authors or
texts or audiences, they are in fact not located in any single place but
depend upon a network of historically variable relationships.15 Accordingly, this chapter falls into three broad (though not unrelated) sections:
the first, remaking as industrial category, deals with issues of production,
including industry (commerce) and authors (intention); the second,
remaking as textual category, considers texts (plots and structures) and taxonomies; and the third, remaking as critical category, deals with issues of
reception, including audiences (recognition) and institutions (discourse).
:
3
Remaking as industrial category
As in some approaches to film genre, remakes can be understood as industrial products, located in ‘the material conditions of commercial filmmaking, where plots are copied and formulas forever reiterated’.16 For film
producers, remakes are consistently thought to provide suitable models,
and something of a financial guarantee, for the development of studio-based
projects. In a commercial context, remakes are ‘pre-sold’ to their audience
because viewers are assumed to have some prior experience, or at least
possess a ‘narrative image’,17 of the original story – an earlier film, literary
or other property – before engaging in its particular retelling.18 Remakes
of cult movies such as King Kong (Merian C. Cooper and Ernest
B. Schoedsack, 1933; John Guillermin, 1976; Peter Jackson, 2005), Godzilla
(Ishiro Honda, 1954; Roland Emmerich, 1998) and Planet of the Apes
(Franklin J. Schaffner, 1968; Tim Burton, 2001) are revived through
massive production budgets as cultural juggernauts, with strong marketing
campaigns and merchandising tie-ins. For instance, in the mid-1970s King
Kong was seen as a ‘natural’ for remaking, not only because of the success
of the original, its pioneering special effects and cult status, but for the
opportunities it provided for promotional tie-ins, from Jim Beam King
Kong cocktails to 7–11 store slurpy drinks in special Kong cups.19 In the
case of recent cross-cultural remakes, such as Vanilla Sky (Cameron Crowe,
2001; Abre Los Ojos, Alejandro Amenábar, 1997), The Ring (Gore Verbinski,
2002; Ringu, Hideo Nakata, 1998) and Insomnia (Christopher Nolan, 2002;
Erik Skjoldbjaerg, 1997), foreign films are dispossessed of ‘local detail’ and
‘political content’ to exploit new (English-language) markets.20 In these
examples, remaking is not only evidence of Hollywood being an ‘aesthetic
copy-cat’, but (worse) of ‘cultural imperialism’ and ‘terroristic marketing
practices’ designed to block an original’s competition in the US market.21
A number of commentators22 have observed that the remake, along with
the sequel and series, has become typical of the defensive production and
marketing strategies of a contemporary, or ‘post-Jaws’, Hollywood. 23 For
instance, Jim Hoberman says that:
The trickle of remakes that began . . . with Farewell, My Lovely in 1975
became a flood of recycled Jazz Singing Scarfaced King Kong ‘landmarks’,
Roman numeral’d replays of old and recent mega-hits, and retired mixedmedia figures [Flash Gordon, Popeye, Superman, and the like] pressed back
into service.24
This ‘great downpour’ of sequels and remakes is perhaps more perceived
than real. For instance, reviewing a sample of 3,490 films from between
4
1940 and 1979 Thomas Simonet concludes that far more ‘recycled script’
films appeared before the conglomerate takeovers of contemporary
Hollywood in the 1970s, and perceptions that remaking has increased may
be governed by comparisons with the 1960s only.25 Nevertheless remaking
is often taken as a sign of Hollywood film having exhausted its creative
potential, leading into ‘conservative plot structures’26 and ‘automatic selfcannibalisation’.27 A recent account of remaking in the popular film
monthly Empire simply put the motivation for studio remakes down to
‘lack of creativity [and] laziness’.28 Similarly, in previewing the television
mini-series remake of On the Beach (Russell Mulcahy, 2000), The Age
newspaper critic Simon Hughes found opportunity not only to express his
antipathy toward remake practice in general, but to condemn both the
mini-series and the earlier, feature film version, On the Beach (Stanley
Kramer, 1959):
In the Dearth of Ideas, hard by the dire Lack of Imagination, dwell those
alchemists of the entertainment industry who delight in turning gold into
base metal. These are the remakers and their awful talent is to be feared. Not
only will they not stop at buggering up a classic like Psycho . . . they will even
transform the second rate – like the original On the Beach – into something
completely forgettable.29
Film remaking is equally seen as a trend that is encouraged by the commercial orientation of the conglomerate ownership of Hollywood. In this
approach, the Hollywood studios seek to duplicate past successes and minimise risk by emphasising the familiar – ‘recreating with slight changes
films that have proved successful in the past’ – even if this leads to ‘aesthetically inferior films’.30 Mark Kermode similarly reports that remakes,
such as The Texas Chainsaw Massacre (Marcus Nispel, 2003; Tobe Hopper,
1974), are cynical ‘rebranding exercises’ and evidence of ‘the entertainment industry’s artistic laziness and penchant for pre-sold product’.31
Stern takes this further, pointing to the commercial ‘paradox’ of remaking:
Remakes reflect the conservative nature of the industry; they are motivated
by an economic imperative to repeat proven successes. But in order to maintain economic viability . . . remakes are also compelled to register variation
and difference (from the originals), to incorporate generic developments.32
As instantly recognisable properties, remakes (along with sequels and
series) work then to satisfy the requirement that Hollywood deliver reliability (repetition) and novelty (innovation) in the same production
package.33 Understood in this way, the remake becomes a particular
:
5
instance not only of the repetition effects which characterise the narrative structure of Hollywood film,34 but also of a more general repetition – of exclusive stars, proprietary characters, patented processes,
narrative patterns and generic elements – through which Hollywood
develops its pre-sold audience.35 In a high-profile example like Planet
of the Apes, the B-movie aesthetic of the original cult film (and series)
becomes an opportunity to revive the franchise as mega-budget
($110 million) blockbuster, complete with stars, special effects and auteur
themes (see Chapter 3).
In discussions of industry and commerce the surest arbiter of what
counts as a film remake is an acknowledgement of copyright, but this limit
is complicated by the flexibility of copyright law,36 and what are commonly
referred to as ‘unacknowledged remakes’ and ‘non-remakes’. In Make It
Again, Sam, Druxman sets out ‘to provide a comprehensive dissertation on
the remake practice’ by ‘detailing the film life of [thirty-three] literary
properties’.37 Druxman begins by electing to limit the category of remake
‘to those theatrical films that were based on a common literary source (i.e.,
story, novel, play, poem, screenplay), but were not a sequel to that material’.38 This ‘seemingly infallible signpost’ is, however, complicated by those
films that are ‘obviously remakes [but] do not credit their origins’.39 In such
cases Druxman adopts a heuristic device – a rule of thumb – which
requires that a new film ‘borrow more than just an element or two from its
predecessor to qualify’.40 This in turn allows Druxman to distinguish
between ‘non-fiction films’ of a single historical incident or biography of a
historical figure (for example, the mutiny on the Bounty or the life of outlaw
Jesse James) which differ because they are based around competing versions of the same incident; and those ‘non-fiction films’ of a like historical
incident which are similar even though they are based upon diverse literary sources.41 As might be expected from an approximate rule which arbitrates according to whether a film’s borrowings are ‘significant’ or only
amount to ‘an element or two’, Druxman ultimately admits that ‘there
were many marginal situations . . . [in which he] simply used [his] own discretion in deciding whether or not to embrace [a film as a remake]’.42
Although Druxman’s recognition of ‘unacknowledged’ remakes
introduces a number of methodological difficulties, he further grounds
his discussion by viewing (pre-1975) Hollywood remaking practice as a
function of industry pragmatism driven by three major factors. First,
Druxman argues that the decision to remake an existing film is primarily a ‘voluntary one’ based on the perceived continuing viability of an
original story. However, industry demand for additional material during
the studio-dominated era of the 1930s and 1940s, and attempts to
6
rationalise the often high costs of source acquisition prompted studios
to consider previously filmed stories as sources for B-pictures, and
even for top-of-the-bill productions.43 As Tino Balio points out, the
Hollywood majors ‘had story departments with large offices in New
York, Hollywood, and Europe that systematically searched the literary
marketplace and stage for suitable novels, plays, short stories, and original ideas’.44 Taking as an example story acquisitions at Warner Brothers
between 1930 and 1949, Balio notes that ‘the pattern of source acquisition demonstrates two often contradictory goals: [1] the desire to base
films on pretested material, that is, low-risk material that was already
well known and well received by the public and [2] the desire to acquire
properties as inexpensively as possible, especially during declining or
uncertain economic circumstances’.45 In practice this meant that while
Warners often invested in expensive pre-sold properties, such as bestselling novels and Broadway hit plays, ‘it offset the high costs of pretested
properties by using original screenplays written in its screenwriting
department and by relying heavily on “the cheapest pretested material
of all” – earlier Warner pictures’.46
Druxman’s second, related point is that the customary studio practice
at the time of purchasing the rights to novels, plays and stories in perpetuity meant that a company was able to produce multiple versions of a particular property without making additional payments to the copyright
holder.47 Canonised classics of literature, such as Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde,
The Count of Monte Cristo and The Three Musketeers not only had pre-sold
titles, but because they were in the public domain, had the added advantage of requiring no initial payment for their dramatic rights.48 While the
majority of recycled, previously purchased source material (particularly
from those films that had done fair to poorly at the box-office) made its way
into B-unit production,49 high-profile titles were sometimes remade to take
advantage of new technologies and practices. Accordingly, Druxman’s
third and final point relates to the profit potential of redoing established
films in order to exploit new stars or screen techniques. For example, following the success of Captain Blood and The Charge of the Light Brigade
(Michael Curtiz, 1935 and 1936) Curtiz’s 1938 version of The Adventures
of Robin Hood is not only a vehicle for co-stars Errol Flynn and Olivia de
Havilland, but also a sound and Technicolor update of the Douglas
Fairbanks silent epic, Robin Hood (Allan Dwan, 1922).50 Expanding screen
technologies, including ‘the developing technological powers of film to
create more convincing representations of reality’,51 and the ongoing
appeal of casting star performers in established roles continue to be cited
as principal motivations for remaking films.
:
7
Druxman’s initial definition, and the above factors of industry pragmatism, allow him to posit three general categories of Hollywood remake:
1. the disguised remake: a literary property is either updated with minimal
change, or retitled and then disguised by new settings and original
characters, but in either case the new film does not seek to draw attention to its earlier version(s), for example Colorado Territory (Raoul
Walsh, 1949) is a disguised Western remake of the crime film High
Sierra (Raoul Walsh, 1941); and High Society (Charles Walters, 1956)
is a musical retelling of The Philadelphia Story (Joseph L. Mankiewicz,
1940);
2. the direct remake: a property may undergo some alterations or even
adopt a new title, but the new film and its narrative image do not hide
the fact that it is based upon an earlier production, for example William
Wellman’s 1939 remake of Beau Geste (Herbert Brenon, 1926), or
Charles Vidor’s 1957 remake of A Farewell to Arms (Frank Borzage,
1932);
3. the non-remake: a new film goes under the same title as a familiar property but there is an entirely new plot, for example Michael Curtiz’s 1940
version of The Sea Hawk (part of the above-mentioned Errol Flynn
swashbuckling cycle) is said to bear little relation to First National’s
1924 adaptation of the Rafael Sabatini novel, and the 1961 remake of
The Thief of Baghdad (Arthur Lubin and Bruno Vailati) is little like
the ‘definitive’ 1940 version (directed by Ludwig Berger, Michael
Powell and Tim Whelan).52
Not surprisingly, Druxman’s three categories do not operate without the
kind of overlap and exclusion that often attends taxonomism. For
instance, an inspection of elements from the second half of James
Cameron’s Titanic (1997) – the band’s decision to play on as the ship sinks;
Benjamin Guggenheim’s preference for his dinner jacket over a life jacket;
designer Thomas Andrews’s address to a young couple at the fireplace of
the first-class lounge – suggest it is a ‘direct’ remake of the British-made
account of the sinking, A Night to Remember (Roy Ward Baker, 1958). But
the narrative drive of the first half of the film – the establishment of the
romance between (fictional) characters Rose DeWitt Bukater (Kate
Winslett) and Jack Dawson (Leonardo DiCaprio) – suggests that it is not
only a ‘non-remake’ of A Night to Remember, but perhaps a ‘disguised’
remake of both It Happened One Night (Frank Capra, 1934) and An Affair
to Remember (Leo McCarey, 1957).53 In addition, any attempt to determine a single precursor text for Titanic (even Druxman’s method for
8
distinguishing between types of ‘non-fiction’ remakes) is further complicated not just by the film’s ‘inter art intertextuality’ (references to paintings, operas and the like),54 but by various other reworkings of the Titanic
disaster: film versions, such as Saved from the Titanic (Eclair Film Co.,
1912), In Nacht und Eis (Kunstfilm, 1912), Titanic (Herbert Selpin, 1943)
and Titanic (Jean Negulesco, 1953), and also books (Walter Lord’s A Night
to Remember), musicals (The Unsinkable Molly Brown), TV movies (S.O.S.
Titanic) and historical accounts (Steven Biel’s Down with the Old Canoe:
A Cultural History of the Titanic). In addition to this, the commercial
quality of Cameron’s Titanic – one of the most expensive and profitable
films ever made – requires that it also take as intertexts broader elements
such as genre (teen romance, action adventure, heritage film), cycle
(millennium disaster movie), stars (Winslett and DiCaprio) and auteur
(Cameron).
Although the example of Titanic presents difficulties for Druxman’s
taxonomy it does, however, support his further claim that, in addition to
industry pragmatism, remaking is located in a film maker’s desire to
repeatedly express (and modify) a particular aesthetic sensibility or world
view in light of new developments and interests.55 In the case of Titanic, it
is not only Cameron’s ‘devotion to and love for the ship at the bottom of
the ocean’,56 but his well-documented ‘preoccupation with precision and
historical accuracy’57 which motivates this particular retelling of the story.
In the anthology Play It Again, Sam, Stuart McDougal takes up this type
of approach, describing Alfred Hitchcock as a director who was continuously revising and remaking his own earlier film work.58 This results not
only in the repetition of specific shots, sequences and themes, but in the
case of Hitchcock’s 1955 remake of his own earlier film, The Man Who
Knew Too Much (1934), it provides the film maker with an opportunity to
rethink ‘the relations between texts, between characters (real and fictional),
and between the work of a younger, more exuberant director and a mature
craftsman’59 (see Chapter 2). In a similar way, Lloyd Michaels argues that
while it is difficult to conceive of a more ‘ “faithful” remake’ of Nosferatu,
A Symphony of Horror (F. W. Murnau, 1922) than Werner Herzog’s
Nosferatu, the Vampyre (1979), the latter not only pays homage to
Murnau’s silent classic but simultaneously ‘resurrects the ghost of
Herzog’, remaking in limited ways the director’s signature themes and
stylistic traits.60
Harvey Roy Greenberg takes this type of authorial approach to remaking a step further, modifying Druxman’s commercially grounded remake
categories to locate the motivation for remakes, ‘well beyond the profit
principle’, in complex, highly personal reasons, based on various ‘Oedipal
:
9
inflections’.61 Following Druxman, Greenberg outlines three categories of
remaking:
1. the acknowledged, close remake: the original film is replicated with little
or no change to the narrative, for example Ben-Hur (William Wyler,
1959; Fred Niblo, 1925; Sidney Olcott, 1907);
2. the acknowledged, transformed remake: there are substantial transformations of character, time and setting, but the original film is variably
acknowledged, ranging from a small screen credit to foregrounding in
promotion, for example A Star Is Born (Frank Pierson, 1976; George
Cukor, 1954; William A. Wellman, 1937), Heaven Can Wait (Warren
Beatty and Buck Henry, 1978; Here Comes Mr Jordan, Alexander Hall,
1941) and Stella (John Erman, 1990; Stella Dallas, King Vidor, 1937;
Stella Dallas, Henry King, 1925);
3. the unacknowledged, disguised remake: minor or major alterations (in
character, time and setting) are undertaken but the audience is not
informed of the original film version, for example studio-era remakes
such as Warner Brothers’ The Wagons Roll at Night (Ray Enright, 1941)
remake of Kid Galahad (Michael Curtiz, 1937).62
Focusing on the example of Steven Spielberg’s Always (1990) – an
‘acknowledged, transformed’ remake of the Second World War fantasy
A Guy Named Joe (Victor Fleming, 1943) – Greenberg finds in ‘the
intensely rivalrous spirit inhabiting Spielberg’s “homage” . . . an unconscious Oedipally driven competitiveness [which] constitutes the dark side
of Spielberg’s intense admiration for the original [film] and its director [and
father surrogate, Victor Fleming]’.63 Greenberg’s ‘symptomatic reading’64
of film remaking is itself an (acknowledged) elaboration of Harold Bloom’s
theory of influence (and the Freudian analogies that structure it),65 and a
like attempt to shift the relationship between a text (remake) and its particular precursor (original) to that between an author and his major predecessor(s).66 In the case of Always, Spielberg, at once worshipful and envious of
his predecessor (Fleming, and also Spielberg senior, a Second World War
veteran), returns to his preferred Second World War locale (the historical
setting for 1941 (1979), Raiders of the Lost Ark (1981), Empire of the Sun
(1987), and the later Schindler’s List (1993) and Saving Private Ryan (1998))
and enters into ‘an ambiguous, anxiety ridden struggle with a film [A Guy
Named Joe] he both wishes to honor and eclipse’.67
Timothy Corrigan argues that auteurs – ‘star-directors’, such as the
above examples of Steven Spielberg and James Cameron – are especially
important in contemporary Hollywood because they serve as a ‘commercial
10
strategy for organising [a type of] audience reception . . . [one which is]
bound to distribution and marketing aims that identify and address the
potential cult status of an auteur’.68 In the case of contemporary remakes,
a pre-existing title is relayed and transformed through the ‘individual
vision’ and ‘personal perspective’ of the film maker.69 Or, as Catherine
Grant puts it, ‘contemporary film auteurs . . . make aspects of [earlier] texts
their own, overwriting them with their own traceable signatures, perhaps
reconfiguring them by incorporating references to other (rewritten) intertexts’.70 Accordingly, Tim Burton’s Planet of the Apes is not a remake but
a ‘re-imagining’ of Schaffner’s film (and Pierre Boulle’s novel); George
A. Romero’s zombie movie Dawn of the Dead (1979) is ‘re-envisioned’ by
Zack Snyder (2004); and Solaris, a 1972 film by Andrei Tarkovsky (from
the novel by Stanislaw Lem) is ‘revisited’ by Steven Soderbergh (2002). In
the latter instance, the original material is not only filtered through the perspective of the film maker, but the contemporary auteur remakes himself
and his earlier remakes:
[Soderbergh’s] Solaris is almost if not quite a rerun of Ocean’s Eleven (outof-towner invades hi-tech labyrinth in order to win back wife), The Underneath
(out-of-towner pursues former wife for second chance), Traffic (strangerin-town searches for lost daughter to reunite family), or The Limey (troubleshooter from another continent arrives in town to avenge lost daughter).71
Remaking as textual category
While the above factors contribute to an understanding of film remaking,
the concept of the remake is never simply reducible to issues of industry
and commerce or matters of influence and authorship. A second, general
(and related) approach suggests that remakes are located in texts (or structures) that are produced in accordance with the narrative invention of
former film models.72 At its most contracted, a textual approach leads to
accounts of remaking which attempt to reduce all narrative structures to a
single (Oedipal) logic or variant thereof. Michael Eaton, for instance, notes
that ‘there are only two possible premises for stories: The Odd Couple and
The Fish Out of Water . . . Although Oedipus, if you think about it, is a bit
of both’.73 While Eaton’s comment might be tongue-in-cheek, the description readily fits any number of recent remakes. For instance, in Planet of
the Apes astronaut Leo Davidson (Mark Wahlberg) finds himself in a tentative (‘odd-couple’) relationship with chimpanzee Ari (Helena Bonham
Carter) on an alien planet dominated by apes. Or in the case of Insomnia,
Will Dormer (Al Pacino) is the ‘fish-out-of-water’ city cop who finds
:
11
himself in the twenty-four hour daylight of an Alaskan summer tracking a
murderer (Robin Williams) with whom he becomes complicit. More commonly though (and as for film genre), the desire to confine film remakes to
a body of texts or set of textual relationships reveals a tension between
‘sharable terms’ (shareability) and ‘accurate designation’ (accuracy).74 In
the case of remaking this is a conflict between a desire to provide exhaustive lists of film remakes, and one (as in Druxman’s and other taxonomies)
to precisely define the category, or various categories, of the remake.
An example of the former approach – of shareability – is Robert Nowlan
and Gwendoline Wright Nowlan’s almost one thousand pages long Cinema
Sequels and Remakes, 1903–1987, a reference work which alphabetically
lists 1,025 ‘primary films’ and many more associated remakes and sequels.
In a brief (not quite two pages long) introduction, Nowlan and Nowlan
make little attempt to define either remake or sequel, but rather take these
as received categories. That is, the principal criterion for selection is that a
film has been previously designated as a remake or sequel in any two or more
of a number of unidentified but ‘reliable source[s]’ which list remakes and
sequels of certain genres of films.75 While this type of loose definition
makes for a wide selection of material (shareability), and does not preclude
the inferential reconstruction of at least some of the unspecified principles
of selection (through an examination of those films that have been
included), Nowlan and Nowlan’s intuitive approach underscores the
extent to which the remake is conceived more through actual usage and
common understanding than through rigorous definition. In this respect,
Nowlan and Nowlan’s account of remaking overlaps with Simonet’s survey
of recycled scripts (that is, remakes, sequels and series), in which each film
is categorised not according to an analysis of its content, but according to
its being identified in the text of a film review. 76
If shareability tends toward exhaustive lists of remakes, then accuracy is
inclined toward taxonomism. Robert Eberwein, for instance, provides a
recent and elaborate taxonomy of remakes, proposing fifteen categories
(many with subdivisions) including sound remakes of silent films,
American remakes of foreign films, parodic remakes, pornographic
remakes and so on.77 In the more developed ‘Twice-Told Tales’, Thomas
M. Leitch makes a number of points about the singularity of the remake
both among Hollywood films and even among other types of narratives.
Leitch argues that:
The uniqueness of the film remake, a movie based on another movie, or competing with another movie based on the same property, is indicated by the
word property. Every film adaptation is defined by its legally sanctioned use
12
of material from an earlier model, whose adaptation rights the producers
have customarily purchased.78
Putting aside for the moment the fact that this description immediately
excludes those ‘obvious remakes’ (Druxman) which do not acknowledge
their previous sources, the point Leitch wants to make is that although
adaptation rights (for example, film adaptation rights of a novel) are something producers of the original work have a right to sell, it is only remakes
that ‘compete directly and without legal or economic compensation with
other versions of the same property’79:
Remakes differ from . . . adaptations to a new medium because of the triangular relationship they establish among themselves, the original film they
remake, and the property on which both films are based. The nature of this
triangle is most clearly indicated by the fact that the producers of a remake
typically pay no adaptation fees to the makers of the original film, but rather
purchase adaptation rights from the authors of the property on which that
film was based, even though the remake is competing much more directly
with the original film – especially in these days of video, when the original
film and the remake are often found side by side on the shelves of rental
outlets – than with the story or play or novel on which it is based.80
Taking as an initial proposition the triangular relationship among a
remake, its original film and the source for both films, Leitch suggests that
any ‘given remake can seek to define itself either with primary reference to
the film it remakes or to the material on which both films are based’. And
then, depending upon ‘whether it poses as a new version of an older film
or of a story predating either film, it can take as its goal fidelity to the conception of the original story or a revisionary attitude toward that story’.81
Accordingly, Leitch outlines the following quadripartite taxonomy of the
remake:
1. Readaptation: the remake ignores or treats as inconsequential earlier
cinematic adaptations in order to readapt as faithfully as possible (or at
least more faithfully than earlier film versions) an original literary property, for example the film versions of Shakespeare’s Hamlet (Laurence
Olivier, 1948; Tony Richardson, 1969; Franco Zeffirelli, 1990) or
Macbeth (Orson Welles, 1948; Roman Polanski, 1971).
2. Update: unlike the readaptation which seeks to subordinate itself to the
‘essence’ of a literary classic, the update ‘competes directly’ with its literary source by adopting an overtly revisionary and transformational
attitude toward it, for example West Side Story (Robert Wise and
:
13
Jerome Robbins, 1961), China Girl (Abel Ferrara, 1987) and William
Shakespeare’s Romeo⫹Juliet (Baz Luhrmann, 1996) as transformed
remakes of earlier, ‘faithful’ filmed versions of Romeo and Juliet
(George Cukor, 1936; Franco Zeffirelli, 1968).
3. Homage: like the readaptation which seeks to direct the audience’s
attention to its literary source, the homage situates itself as a secondary
text in order to pay tribute to a previous film version, for example, Brian
De Palma’s Obsession (1975) and Body Double (1986) as homages to
Alfred Hitchcock’s Vertigo (1958), or Rainer Werner Fassbinder’s Fear
Eats the Soul (1974) and Todd Haynes’s Far From Heaven (2002) as tributes to Douglas Sirk’s All That Heaven Allows (1956).
4. True remake: while the homage renounces any claim to be better than its
original, the true remake ‘deal[s] with the contradictory claims of all
remakes – that they are just like their originals only better – [by combining] a focus on a cinematic original with an accommodating stance
which seeks to make the original relevant by updating it’, for example
Bob Rafelson’s 1981 remake of The Postman Always Rings Twice (Tay
Garnett, 1946) or Lawrence Kasdan’s Body Heat (1981) as a remake of
Double Indemnity (Billy Wilder, 1944).82
Leitch concludes that, unlike readaptations, updates and homages, which
only acknowledge one earlier text (literary in the first two cases and cinematic in the third), ‘true remakes [emphasise] a triangular notion of intertextuality, since their rhetorical strategy depends on ascribing their value
to a classic earlier text’ (that is, an original property such as James
M. Cain’s novel, The Postman Always Rings Twice), ‘and protecting that
value by invoking a second earlier [film] text as betraying it’ (Garnett’s
version as a watered-down film noir, probably due to limitations imposed
by the MGM studio and the Production Code of the 1940s).83
While Leitch’s recognition of the significance of a literary property, and
in particular the relationship of a film adaptation and its remake to that
property, leads to what at first appears to be a more inflected taxonomy than
that developed by Druxman, further consideration reveals a number of
difficulties, not only among Leitch’s four categories but in relation to his
preliminary suppositions. First, while the ubiquity of the Hollywood
remake might understandably lead Leitch to conclude that the remake is a
particularly cinematic form, one might question to what extent it differs
from the remaking of songs in the popular music industry. That is, how
does the triadic relationship between (1) the Pet Shop Boys’ long remake
(of their earlier, shorter remake) of ‘Always on My Mind’, (2) the 1972
version of the same song by Elvis Presley, and (3) the original property
14
(music and lyrics written by Thompson James Christopher and published
by Screen Gems/EMI) differ appreciably from the triangular relationship
for the film remake as described by Leitch? Or, to take as another example
a case which underscores Leitch’s overestimation of the economic competition a remake creates for a former adaptation, the Sid Vicious remake of
‘My Way’ from The Great Rock’n’Roll Swindle (Julien Temple, 1980), and
even Gary Oldman’s remake of that performance for Alex Cox’s Sid and
Nancy (1986), competes culturally, but not economically, with Frank
Sinatra’s earlier adaptation of a property written by Reveaux, Francois and
Anka. Director Cameron Crowe draws attention to the affinity between
remaking in popular music and film, describing Vanilla Sky as a ‘cover
version’ of Abre Los Ojos, and Martin Arnold’s extraordinary Alone: Life
Wastes Andy Hardy (1998) remakes the Mickey Rooney–Judy Garland
Andy Hardy cycle (1937–58) through the methods of music ‘sampling’.
These examples, and (many) others from the popular music industry, adequately conform to, and so problematise, Leitch’s initial claim that the film
remake is unique because of the fact that its producers ‘typically pay no
adaptation fees to the makers of the original [version], but rather purchase
adaptation rights from the authors [publishers] of the property on which
that [version] was based’.84
A second limitation is that while Druxman at least acknowledges the
difficulty of identifying and categorising those films ‘that are obviously
remakes [but] do not credit their origins’,85 Leitch remains silent in this
respect. For instance, Leitch considers Body Heat a ‘true remake’ of Double
Indemnity, but he does not comment upon the fact that the film’s credits
do not acknowledge the James M. Cain novel as a source. Similarly, Leitch
takes Obsession and Body Double to be ‘homages’ to Vertigo but he fails to
note that neither of the films credits either the Alec Coppel and Samuel
Taylor screenplay, or the Pierre Boileau and Thomas Narceiac novel,
D’entre les morts, upon which the Hitchcock film is based. Examples such
as Sergio Leone’s A Fistful of Dollars (Per un pugno di dollari, 1964) remake
of Yojimbo (Akira Kurosawa, 1961) – uncredited, but consistently
‘acknowledged’ in critical commentaries – suggest that taxonomies need
attend not only to the nature of textual remakings (‘free’ or ‘faithful’), but
to contextual (or extratextual) markers, such as credits and reviews, that
enable the identification of the intertext (see Chapters 3 and 5). While the
question of categorising unacknowledged remakes is returned to below,
Leitch’s insistence upon the connection between three elements – a
remake, an earlier version and a literary property – presents a further
difficulty in that it marginalises those instances in which a dyadic relationship exists between a remake and a previous film that is itself (at least in the
:
15
The Assassin (John Badham, 1994). Courtesy Warner Bros/
The Kobal Collection.
sense conveyed by Leitch) the original property. Although it might be
objected that a published original screenplay constitutes a discrete property, the point to be made here is that the remake of an ‘original film property’, such as John Badham’s The Assassin [Point of No Return] (1994), does
not ‘compete directly and without legal or economic compensation’ with
16
its earlier version, but (generally) pays adaptation fees to the copyright
holder of the original film upon which it is based (in this example, Luc
Besson’s Nikita, 1990).86 Indeed, some producers of (foreign) originals,
realising the direct financial gains to be made, are actively involved in the
production of US remakes.87 For example, following an unsuccessful
attempt to repackage a dubbed version of Les Visiteurs (1993) for an
English language, multiplex audience, director Jean-Marie Poiré extended
the franchise (which included the sequel, Les Couloirs du temps: Les
Visiteurs II, 1998) through a 2001 French/American remaking, Just
Visiting (directed under the pseudonym Jean-Marie Gaubert).88
The above example of the American remake of Nikita (and also Les
Visiteurs) not only demonstrates that a ‘triangular relationship’ fails to adequately accommodate remakes of those films based upon original stories
and screenplays but highlights the difficulty of Leitch’s suggestion that
remakes compete with earlier versions, and his belief that successful
remakes supersede and so ‘typically threaten the economic viability of their
originals’.89 To stay with the example of the French-Italian production of
Nikita, it seems doubtful that having successfully played an art-cinema
circuit and having been released to home video (variously under the categories of ‘cult’, ‘festival’ and ‘art-house’) the appearance of The Assassin,
initially as a first-run theatrical release and then as a mainstream video
release, would have any appreciable impact (either positive or negative)
upon the former’s ‘economic viability’. Admittedly, The Assassin was not
promoted as a remake of the Besson film, but even a widely publicised
remake such as Martin Scorsese’s 1991 version of Cape Fear did not occasion the burial, or even diminish the cult following, of J. Lee Thompson’s
earlier (1961) version. On the contrary, the theatrical release of the
Scorsese film (accompanied by press releases and reviews foregrounding
its status as remake) prompted first a video release and then a prime-time
national television screening of the Thompson version. The reciprocity of
the two versions is further exemplified by Sight and Sound magazine’s
running together of a lead article by Jim Hoberman on Scorsese and Cape
Fear and a second briefer article comparing the two versions (‘novelist . . .
Jenny Diski watches a video of the first Cape Fear and the Scorsese
remake – and compares them’) and giving details of the availability of the
(then recently) re-released CIC video of the 1961 version.90 More recently,
the two versions of Cape Fear have been released together to DVD in a collector’s three-disc boxed set. This does not, however, mean that reciprocity is always the case. In the international marketplace a local remake may
supplant an earlier foreign language and/or culture version. For instance,
the producers of the Brazilian Costinha e o King Mong (1977), a parodic
:
17
remake of King Kong (1933/1976), capitalised on the advertising apparatus and pre-release publicity for Guillermin’s 1976 remake to release a
version that ran simultaneously with the American remake in Brazilian theatres. 91 While it is likely that both versions benefited from this arrangement, it seems probable too that King Mong siphoned off some of its older
sibling’s box-office receipts.
The example of Cape Fear suggests that contemporary remakes generally enjoy a (more) symbiotic relationship with their originals, with publicity and reviews often drawing attention to earlier versions. As Steve
Neale points out, along with the institutionalised public discourses of
press, television and radio, a key role in communicating the narrative image
of a new film is played by the industry itself, ‘especially in the earliest
phases of a film’s public circulation, and in particular by those sectors of
the industry concerned with publicity and marketing’.92 In the case of
remakes, official film websites will often draw attention to originals, seeing
this as an opportunity to instantly invest new versions not only with a narrative image, but with aesthetic (and commercial) value. On these sites, film
makers often enthuse about the ‘timeless’ attributes and ‘classic’ status of
originals before going on to insist upon their own value-added transformations. For instance, F. Gary Gray, the director of the 2003 version of The
Italian Job, says ‘I liked a lot of things about the original [The Italian Job,
Peter Collinson, 1969]. It had great style and unforgettable performances’.
Gray goes on to add: ‘but the film that we’ve made is for modern audiences,
with updated technology’.93 Following the 2003 theatrical run of The
Italian Job, both versions were simultaneously released to DVD, with
extras on the remake DVD not only drawing attention to the original, but
featuring scenes from it. More than this, the subsequent release of
Paramount Home Video’s ‘The Italian Job Gift Set’ DVD edition (which
included both 1969 and 2003 versions) suggests that, just as adaptations of
literary properties often lead viewers back to source novels for a first
reading, remakes encourage viewers to seek out original film properties94
(see Chapter 5).
While the above examples suggest that Leitch might overestimate the
extent to which some remakes compete with original film versions, his
recognition of the impact that innovations in television technology, particularly home video, have had upon shaping the relationship between a
remake and its earlier versions should not be underestimated. Leitch states
that during the studio-dominated era of the 1930s and 1940s it was at least
in part the belief that films had a ‘strictly current value’ that enabled
studios such as Warners to recycle The Maltese Falcon property three times
in ten years (Roy Del Ruth, 1931; Satan Met a Lady, William Dieterle,
18
1936; John Huston, 1941), and release many ‘unofficial remakes’ of its own
films.95 Although the re-release of successful features, particularly during
the late 1940s and early 1950s, gave some films a limited currency outside
their initial year of release,96 the majority of films held in studio libraries
were not available for re-viewing until the mid-1950s when the major
studios decided to sell or lease their film libraries to television.97 The
release of thousands of pre-1948 features into the television market not
only gave the general public the opportunity to see many films that had
been held in studio archives since their initial year of release, but provided
the possibility of seeing different versions of the same property, produced
years or even decades apart, within weeks or even days of each other.
Moreover, and in an instance of what has been described as the ‘virtual
mobility’ of contemporary spectatorship,98 the television broadcasting of
films provided the further possibility of viewing remakes outside of the
temporal order of their production. That is, the repeated screening of the
same features meant that it was inevitable that the broadcast of a remake
would precede the screening of its original. While Leitch does not address
the impact of television, his recognition that a remake and its original circulate in the same video marketplace draws attention to the fact that the
introduction of an information storage technology such as videotape (and
now DVD) radically extends the kind of film literacy – the ability to recognise and cross-reference multiple versions of the same property – that was
inaugurated by the age of television.
The ever-expanding availability of texts and technologies, and the
unprecedented awareness of film history among new Hollywood film
makers and contemporary audiences, is closely related to the general
concept of intertextuality, an in principle determination which requires
that texts be understood not as self-contained structures but as ‘the repetition and transformation of other [absent] textual structures’.99 In Mikhail
Iampolski’s discussion of intertextuality and film, the ‘semantic fullness’
of a text is precisely ‘the result of its ability to establish a connection with
[these other] texts that came before it, and occasionally with those that
came later’.100 Refusing to reduce this type of semantic productivity to a
simple question of influence, Iampolski draws instead upon Ferdinand de
Saussure’s (and Julia Kristeva’s) account of the anagram to define the intertextual element – the quotation – as that ‘fragment of the text that violates
its linear development [its internal, textual repetitions] and derives the motivation that integrates it into the text from outside the text itself’.101 As this
description suggests, the ‘semantic anomaly’ of the quotation disrupts the
linear unfolding of the text impelling the reader toward a non-linear
(‘tabular’) intertextual reading, but one that may ultimately enrich
:
19
meaning and salvage the very same narrative linearity that was initially
compromised.102 Additionally, Iampolski points out that an ‘embedded
quotation’, one that seems to derive its motivation from the logic of the text
and so dissolves into the film’s mimetic structure (that is, a quotation
known to the author but not the reader) is, paradoxically, not a quote, and
(conversely) an ‘anomalous moment’ can become a quote through the reader
making specific moves of exegesis, regardless of whether this expresses the
author’s intentions.103 Adapted to the case of the film remake, this suggests
that ‘remaking is not necessarily about intended effects, nor necessarily
about precise identification of an intertext. It is, or it may be, a more general
intertextual relation, although this doesn’t mean that it is unstructured or
imprecise in its operations’.104
Robert Stam takes up the concept of intertextuality in film drawing
upon Gérard Genette’s description of transtextuality as ‘all that which puts
one text into a relation, manifest or secret, with other texts’ to describe
several types of textual transcendence.105 Among these categories, the term
‘intertextuality’ specifically describes the ‘literal presence of one text
within another’, principally as ‘quotation’ (or ‘the explicit summoning up
of a text that is both presented and distanced by quotation marks’), but also
through ‘plagiarism and allusion of various kinds’.106 In its most literal and
contracted form, remaking as quotation would describe the (acknowledged)
insertion of segments from one film into another. There are countless
instances of direct quotation in feature films. Examples include: Nana
(Anna Karina) watching images of Maria Falconetti from La Passion de
Jeanne d’Arc (Carl Theodor Dreyer, 1928) in Vivre sa vie (Jean-Luc
Godard, 1962); Allan (Woody Allen) transfixed upon the ending from
Casablanca (Michael Curtiz, 1942) in Play it Again, Sam (Herbert Ross,
1972); Donnie (Jake Gyllenhaal) and Gretchen (Jena Malone) ‘sleeping’
through The Evil Dead (Sam Raimi, 1981) in Donnie Darko (Richard Kelly,
2001); and, in one of the most expansive of recent examples, scenes from
Shock Corridor (Sam Fuller, 1963), A bout de souffle (Jean-Luc Godard,
1959), Queen Christina (Rouben Mamoulian, 1933), Bande à part (Jean-Luc
Godard, 1964), Blonde Venus (Josef von Sternberg, 1932) and others interspersed throughout The Dreamers (Bernardo Bertolucci, 2003). The unauthorised but direct use of material in experimental films – for example, clips
from East of Borneo (George Melford, 1931) in Rose Hobart (Joseph
Cornell, 1936); fragments from The Wild One (László Benedek, 1951) in
Scorpio Rising (Kenneth Anger, 1964); and soundbites from Ali Baba and
the Forty Thieves (Arthur Lubin, 1944) in Flaming Creatures (Jack Smith,
1963) – would constitute a kind of quotation as appropriation.107 By contrast, plagiarism – the direct but unacknowledged use of segments from
20
another film – is (by definition) a less obvious but no less prevalent strategy. Plagiarism might include the use of stock footage (establishing shots,
action sequences and the like) in genre films and B-movies. For instance,
Flying Leathernecks (Nicholas Ray, 1951) makes extensive use of US Navy
newsreel footage for its battle sequences, and stock footage recurs in the
various versions of the Titanic story.108 Finally, while Genette seeks to
restrict intertextuality to direct and localised instances of citation, allusion
suggests a wide range of practices, and a potential overlap with the forms
of imitation, pastiche and parody reserved by Genette for the category of
‘hypertextuality’ where a hypertext ‘transforms, modifies, elaborates, or
extends’ an anterior hypotext109 (see Chapter 3). Employed here in a
restricted sense, allusion describes ‘a verbal or visual evocation of another
film’,110 and includes such strategies as the mention of films and film
makers in dialogue, the display of film titles on marquees and posters, and
the recreation of classic scenes, shots and lines of dialogue from earlier
movies. For instance, Omar Calabrese claims that Spielberg’s Raiders of
the Lost Ark includes 350 allusions to old Hollywood films.111 Or, to give a
more recent and specific example, in the 2030 sequence in The Time
Machine (Simon Wells, 2002) Alexander Hartdegen (Guy Pearce) asks Vox,
a holographic guide at the New York public library, about time travel and
is referred not only to The Time Machine by H. G. Wells but also to the
original 1960 film directed by George Pal.
Genette’s ‘highly suggestive’ category of intertextuality leads Stam to
speculate upon sub-categories within the same paradigm.112 Some of
these terms can be productively adapted for a discussion of remaking. The
first sub-category, celebrity intertextuality, defines those situations in
which the presence of a film or television star or celebrity evokes an earlier
version of a film property. This is evident in many contemporary remakes
where actors from original films lend themselves to cameo appearances.
For instance, Robert Mitchum and Gregory Peck – stars of J. Lee
Thompson’s version of Cape Fear (1961) – take minor roles in Martin
Scorsese’s 1991 remake. In another example, two of the four actors who
played the ‘survivors’ in George A. Romero’s Dawn of the Dead (1978)
appear in different roles in the 2004 remake, and a third actor from the
original (Gaylen Ross) has a clothing store in the mall named after her.
A second, similar sub-category of intertextuality is referred to as genetic
intertextuality. In this case, the appearance of a well-known actor’s child
(or other relative) evokes the memory of an earlier film version. For
example, in Swept Away (Guy Ritchie, 2002) Adriano Giannini takes
on the role played by his father, Giancarlo, in Lina Wertmüller’s original
Swept Away . . . by an Unusual Destiny in the Blue Sea of August (1974).
:
21
In a related example, Simon Wells, director of the 2002 remake of The
Time Machine, is great-grandson to H. G. Wells, author of the book from
which the film versions are derived. Stam’s next category, intratextuality,
might be employed to describe the way in which a remake refers to the
process of remaking – in particular, the status of originals and copies –
through strategies of mirroring or mise-en-abyme structures. For example,
Laura Grindstaff says that Luc Besson’s Nikita (1990) is an ‘adaptation of
the Pygmalion myth in which a woman is subjected to a dramatic makeover’, and as such ‘the Nikita narrative stands as a synecdoche for the relation between original film and its copies [The Assassin and Black Cat]’.113
Similar arguments have been made about the way in which science fiction
remakes like The Fly (Kurt Neumann, 1958; David Cronenberg, 1986)
and Invasion of the Body Snatchers (Don Siegel, 1956; Philip Kaufman,
1978) act out the logic of the original and the copy.114 Finally, the category
of autocitation would refer to a film maker’s self-quotation through
the remaking of his/her own earlier film. Examples include Alfred
Hitchcock’s The Man Who Knew Too Much (1955, 1934), George Sluizer’s
The Vanishing (1993, 1971) and Takashi Shimizu’s The Grudge (2004,
Ju-On: The Grudge, 2003).
Film remaking can be regarded as a specific (institutionalised) aspect of
the broader and more open-ended intertextuality described above. It can
range from the limited repetition of a classic shot or scene, for example the
many reprises of the Odessa Steps sequence of The Battleship Potemkin
(Sergei Eisenstein, 1925) – Bananas (Woody Allen, 1971), Brazil (Terry
Gilliam, 1985), The Untouchables (Brian De Palma, 1987), Steps (Zbigniew
Rybczynski, 1987) and Naked Gun 331⁄3: The Final Insult (Peter Segal,
1994) – to the ‘quasi-independent’ repetitions of a single story or popular
myth,115 for example the successive versions of Dracula or Robin Hood or
the Titanic story. More often, though, film remakes are understood as
(more particular) intertextual structures which are stabilised, or limited,
through the naming and (usually) legally sanctioned (or copyrighted) use
of a particular literary and/or cinematic source which serves as a retrospectively designated point of origin and semantic fixity. In addition, these
intertextual structures (unlike those of genre) are highly particular in their
repetition of narrative units, and these repetitions most often (though certainly not always) relate to the content (‘the order of the message’) rather
than to the form (or ‘the code’) of the film.116 Brian De Palma’s Obsession
(1976) provides an example of both, repeating not only the narrative invention of Alfred Hitchcock’s Vertigo (1958), but ‘resurrecting’ some of
Hitchcock’s most visible stylistic characteristics, such as doubling effects
and the voyeuristic use of point-of-view shots.117
22
While these factors yield some degree of consensus, any easy categorisation of the remake is frustrated (as seen above) by a number of factors.
First, there is the problem of those films which do not credit an ‘original’
text, but which do repeat both general and particular elements of another
film’s narrative unfolding, for example Body Heat as an uncredited remake
of Double Indemnity; The Big Chill (Lawrence Kasdan, 1983) as an unacknowledged remake of The Return of the Secaucus Seven (John Sayles,
1980); and Flying Tigers (David Miller, 1942) and all major combat films of
the early 1940s as unacknowledged remakes of Only Angels Have Wings
(Howard Hawks, 1939).118 Second, there is the difficulty of those films
based on a like source – a literary (or other) work or historical incident –
but which differ significantly in their treatment of narrative units, for
example The Bounty (Roger Donaldson, 1984) as a non-remake of Mutiny
on the Bounty (Frank Lloyd, 1935 and Lewis Milestone, 1962); Tony
Richardson’s The Charge of the Light Brigade (1968) as a non-remake of
Michael Curtiz’s 1936 version; and The King and I (Richard Rich, 1999) as
a remake of the Rogers and Hammerstein musical, but not of the film versions based on Margaret Landon’s book or Anna Leonowens’s diaries.
Moreover, in a contemporary context, remakes increasingly take only the
pre-sold title of an original property as a point of departure to create a nonremake, with all new characters, settings and situations. A third complication (discussed further below) arises from the fact that originals are never
pure or singular. For instance, Michaels notes that Herzog’s remaking of
Nosferatu is complicated by the fact that the negative of the Murnau ‘original’ was destroyed, and that all existing prints are copies (remakes) reproduced from Murnau’s shooting script.119 Furthermore, the intertextual
referentiality between either ‘non-remakes’ or ‘unacknowledged remakes’
and their ‘originals’ is to a large extent extratextual,120 being conveyed
through institutions such as film reviewing, marketing, distribution and
exhibition. For example, the BFI/National Film Theatre’s programme
describes four films from Paul Schrader scripts – Taxi Driver (Martin
Scorsese, 1976), Rolling Thunder (John Flynn, 1977), Hardcore (Schrader,
1979) and Patty Hearst (Schrader, 1988) – as ‘updates’, or remakes, of The
Searchers (John Ford, 1956).121 And Schrader has since added that his later
Mishima: A Life in Four Chapters (1985) is in turn a ‘remake’ of Taxi
Driver.122 In a more complicated example, reviewers consistently refer to
The Big Chill as a remake of The Return of the Secaucus Seven,123 even
though director John Sayles does not admit to the description: ‘I never felt
like it [The Big Chill] was a rip-off. It goes in such a different direction. It’s
like saying if my movie had an Indian and a horse in it: “Oh, it’s a rip-off
of Shane” ’.124
:
23
Remaking as critical category
The above comments suggest that remakes do not consist simply of bodies
of films but, like genres, are located too in ‘expectations and audience
knowledge’125 and in ‘the institutions that govern and support specific
reading strategies’.126 The concept of intertextuality needs, for instance, to
be related to the ever-expanding availability of texts and technologies, the
tendency of contemporary Hollywood film makers to combine the commercial necessity of generic patterns of repetition with more direct patterns of borrowing (allusion and quotation), and the unprecedented
awareness of film history both among film makers and contemporary audiences.127 As seen in Leitch’s taxonomy, a remake can be categorised according to whether its intertextual referent is literary (the ‘readaptation’, the
‘update’) or cinematic (the ‘homage’, the ‘true remake’). In the latter case,
Leitch states that while homages, such as The Thing (John Carpenter, 1982)
and Invaders from Mars (Tobe Hooper, 1986), establish direct intertextual
relations to their original films (The Thing from Another World, Christian
Nyby, 1951; Invaders from Mars, William Cameron Menzies, 1953), these
quotations or ‘rewards . . . take the form of throwaway jokes whose point
is not necessary to the [film’s] continuity, and which therefore provide an
optional bonus of pleasure to those in the know’.128 This seems consistent
with what Umberto Eco describes as the ‘intertextual dialogue’, that is the
instance where a quotation is explicit and recognisable to an increasingly
sophisticated, ciné-literate audience.129 But what Leitch does not
sufficiently stress here is that his examples of the homage (and of the true
remake) – all drawn from the new Hollywood cinema – suggest a historically specific response to a postmodern circulation and recirculation of
images and texts. This does not mean that the classical Hollywood remake
never takes an earlier film as its intertextual referent, but rather that, as the
continuity system develops through the pre-classical period (1908–17),
direct intertextual referentiality is mostly displaced by an industrial imperative for standardisation which prioritises the intertextual relation of
genres, cycles and stars. Accordingly, as the classical narrative strives to
create a coherent, self-contained fictional world according to specific
mechanisms of internal (or intratextual) repetition, direct intertextual referentiality to earlier film versions (and other textualised sources) becomes
an extratextual referentiality, carried by such apparatuses as advertising
and promotional materials (posters, lobby cards, commercial tie-ins, etc.),
film magazines, review articles and academic film criticism (see Chapter 5).
What seems to happen with contemporary Hollywood cinema, particularly in the case of remakes, is that while the intratextual mechanisms of
24
Cape Fear (Martin Scorsese, 1991). Courtesy Universal/The Kobal Collection.
classical continuity are mostly respected, intertextual referentiality
(to genres, cycles and stars) is sometimes complemented by what is
perceived – within specific interpretive communities130 – as the explicit and
recognisable intertextual quotation of plot motifs and stylistic features
peculiar to earlier film versions. To take a general example, and one that
:
25
underscores the assertion that ‘allusion constitute[s] . . . the very briefest
form of “remaking” ’,131 the narrative of Unforgiven (Clint Eastwood,
1992) assumes as its primary intertexts the revisionist Westerns of the
1960s and 1970s and the Eastwood star persona, but (re)viewers additionally see the film as a kind of sequel (the Will Munny character as the
now aged ‘Man-with-no-name’ from Eastwood’s spaghetti Westerns),
and as a homage to the films of both Sam Peckinpah and John Ford. For
instance, Pat Dowell states that Unforgiven is ‘inescapably Fordian’ in its
mood, lifting a ‘signature scene’ – the man silhouetted against the sunset,
looking over the grave of his beloved wife – from She Wore a Yellow Ribbon
(1949) and Young Mr Lincoln (1939).132 More specifically, Martin
Scorsese’s remake of Cape Fear may be said to work perfectly well as a
conventional thriller (a psychopath attacks a ‘normal’ – in this case, dysfunctional – American family), but the new Cape Fear also ‘assumes [in its
reworking of the original Bernard Herrmann score, and the casting of
original lead players in cameo roles] that the viewer has seen the earlier
one, perhaps even as recently as Scorsese himself ’.133 Another example,
Jim McBride’s Breathless (1983), displays a ‘neo-noir’ predilection for
l’amour fou, but also quotes its Godard original (A bout de souffle, 1959) in
its smallest detail (a character’s name, a player’s gesture), and more generally embraces Godard’s enthusiasm for American pop-cultural iconography: the title song, ‘Breathless’, by the ‘Killer’, Jerry Lee Lewis; the
direct quotation from Joseph H. Lewis’s Gun Crazy (1950); the Roy
Lichtenstein-type lifts from Marvel Comics’ The Silver Surfer; the collectable American automobile – the 1957 Ford Thunderbird, the 1959
Cadillac Eldorado (see Chapter 6). While it is possible to find instances
of ‘direct’ quotation in the classical cinema, the above examples demonstrate that ‘at whatever level of generality the intertext exists (or rather
can be posited), every remake simultaneously refers to and remakes the
genre to which that intertext belongs, and this genre may itself be the only
intertext’.134
The type of intertextual referentiality that characterises contemporary
American film circulates in a historically specific context. Accordingly, the
identification of (and indeed the commercial decision to remake) an earlier
film is located in particular extratextual, institutional or discursive practices. As in Noël Carroll’s discussion of new Hollywood ‘allusionism’, the
question of intertextual referentiality needs to be related to the radical
extension of film literacy and the enthusiasm for (American) film history
that took hold in the United States during the 1960s and early 1970s.135
Partly made possible by the release of Hollywood features to television
and the wider accessibility of new technologies (for example, 16 mm film
26
projection), this re-evaluation, or legitimisation, of Hollywood cultural
product was underwritten by such additional factors as the importation
of the French politique des auteurs, the upsurge of repertory theatre
short seasons, the expansion of film courses in American universities and
the emergence of professional associations such as the American Film
Institute. Accordingly, and this is evident from the above examples –
Unforgiven, Cape Fear, Breathless – the selection and recognition of films,
and bodies of films, for quotation and reworking (for example, the work of
auteurs, Ford and Peckinpah; the cult movie, Cape Fear; the nouvelle vague
landmark, A bout de souffle) can be located in the institutionally determined
practice of film canon formation and its contributing projects – the determination to comment upon and conserve a film heritage, the discussion
and citation of particular films in popular and academic film criticism, the
selective release and re-release of films to theatrical and video distribution
windows, the proliferation of talk and websites on the Internet and (in circular fashion) the decision of other film makers to evoke earlier films and
recreate cinema history.136
An understanding of the formation and maintenance of the film canon
in turn goes some way toward explaining why remakes of highly institutionalised film noirs – for example, D.O.A. (Rocky Morton and Annabel
Jankel, 1988), No Way Out (Roger Donaldson, 1987) and Against All Odds
(Taylor Hackford, 1984) – are discussed with reference to their originals
(D.O.A. (Rudolph Maté, 1949), The Big Clock (John Farrow, 1948) and Out
of the Past (Jacques Tourneur, 1947), respectively), while films such as
Martin Scorsese’s version of The Age of Innocence (1993) and James
Dearden’s remake of A Kiss Before Dying (1991) defer, not to their little
known or (now) rarely seen earlier film versions – The Age of Innocence
(Wesley Ruggles, 1924; Philip Moeller, 1934) and A Kiss Before Dying
(Gerd Oswald, 1961) – but to the authority of an established literary canon:
The Age of Innocence is based on Edith Wharton’s 1920 Pulitzer Prize
winning novel and A Kiss Before Dying is adapted from a best-selling novel
by Ira Levin. Indeed, and in accordance with the canonisation of the work
of Alfred Hitchcock, the more direct intertextual referent for the remake
of A Kiss Before Dying is Hitchcock’s Vertigo – a clip from the film appears
diegetically on a character’s television screen, and in addition to the ‘figure’
of the doppelganger there is allusion to Hitchcockian plot structure and
motif: ‘liberally alluding to Hitchcock by killing off his leading actress in
the first reel, Dearden includes subtler references like the washing out of
hair-dye and the cop who just won’t leave’.137 Steven Soderbergh’s remake
of Solaris is similarly likened not only to its direct precursor (the
Tarkovsky version), but is ‘reminiscent of Hitchcock’s Vertigo’,138 and has
:
27
‘more than a touch of Vertigo’s l’amour fou as déjà vu’.139 In another
example, Kolker suggests that Scorsese’s Cape Fear is not simply a ‘direct
remake’ of the 1961 version, but a ‘secret remake’ of three ‘minor’
Hitchcock films: Stage Fright (1950), Strangers on a Train (1951) and
I Confess (1953): ‘[Cape Fear] adopts the plot of its predecessor while
gaining a deeper structure through an allusive tag game with [these] three
Hitchcock films’.140
The endless chain of connections – both voluntary and involuntary –
which characterises film remaking is further sketched in Lesley Stern’s
The Scorsese Connection. Stern argues, for instance, that Scorsese’s version
of Cape Fear, in its reworking of elements of horror and film noir, is as
much a remake of The Night of the Hunter (Charles Laughton, 1955) as it
is of Thompson’s earlier film version.141 Additionally, Stern sees Max
Cady (Robert DeNiro) from Cape Fear as a ‘reincarnation’ of Taxi Driver’s
Travis Bickle (also played by DeNiro) who, in turn, is a kind of ‘resurrected’ Ethan Edwards, the John Wayne character from The Searchers.142
Moreover, Stern states that ‘it is not just characters who are reincarnated:
ideas persist, questions that are not answered, anomalies that drive by night
through a variety of cinematic landscapes [return].’143 In the case of The
Searchers, Stern traces an elaborate exchange, ‘a network of similarities, a
kind of cinematic scar tissue [it is the Indian Chief ‘Scar’ whom Ethan
pursues] that stretches, extends over the continuity of the celluloid
surface’.144 In The Searchers and Taxi Driver, this exchange is not just (to
give two examples) an oscillation between the terms of ‘home’ and ‘away’,
or the reproduction of a prohibition against contamination and miscegenation, but more broadly the ghostly return of ‘a troubling scenario of
irresolution . . . The repetition . . . (aimless yet compulsive) . . . of the
obsessive structure of the films [of all films] themselves’.145
The above examples of A Kiss Before Dying, Cape Fear and The
Searchers/Taxi Driver demonstrate that ‘the intertext, the precursor text,
is never singular and never a moment of pure origin’.146 This is nowhere
more evident than in Breathless, the American remake of A bout de souffle.
At one level, Breathless is a genre movie, an outlaw romance which draws
heavily on the romantic star persona developed by Richard Gere in films
like American Gigolo (Paul Schrader, 1980) and An Officer and a Gentleman
(Taylor Hackford, 1982). For a contemporary audience, the Breathless
update is a ‘suitably jazzy, sexy entertainment’,147 but its identification as
remake may be the occasion for an interpretive shift, restricting attention to
particular scenes and to a comparative analysis of the remake to its original. For instance, Gilbert Adair says that ‘whatever its precise status –
homage, pastiche, paraphrase, vulgarisation’ – the McBride film is in ‘no
28
significant sense’ a remake of A bout de souffle, but rather ‘a wet, pulpy,
squelching kiss lovingly applied to Hollywood’s backside’.148 Reviewers
thus appeal to originals not only in order to establish the (greater or lesser)
worth of the remake, but also to secure the value of the film medium by
relating it to deeply established precursors (the canon).149 The identification of a source can secure the former version as a kind of fixity (against
which the remake is evaluated), but ‘there can never be a simple original
uncomplicated by the structure of the remake’.150 Just as Breathless admits
to other intertexts – its makers screened Gun Crazy, High Sierra (1941),
and Killer’s Kiss (1955) during pre-production151 – A bout de souffle draws
upon classic film noirs – Whirlpool (1949), The Enforcer (1951), The Harder
They Fall (1956), Ten Seconds to Hell (1959) – and a host of inter-art intertexts, among them: Paul Klee’s The Timid Brute (1938), Picasso’s The
Lovers (1923), Faulkner’s The Wild Palms (1939) and Maurice Sachs’s
Abracadabra (1952).152 Understood in relation to a vast body of critical
writing on Godard, Breathless is but one moment in an elaborate chain of
reworkings: Godard as critic rewrites Hollywood cinema; Andrew Sarris
rewrites Godard as critic; Godard remakes Hollywood cinema in A bout de
souffle; Godard remakes A bout de souffle in Pierrot le fou (1965); McBride
remakes Godard in David Holzman’s Diary (1967); McBride remakes
A bout de souffle in Breathless; Quentin Tarantino remakes everyone in Pulp
Fiction (1994) (see Chapter 6).
Like all critical constructs (genre included), remaking – quotation, allusion, adaptation – is created and sustained through the repeated use of
terminology.153 The suggestion that the very limited direct intertextual
referentiality between the remake and its original is organised according to
an extratextual referentiality, located in historically specific discursive
formations – especially film criticism and reviewing, but also copyright law
and authorship, canon formation and film literacy – has consequences for
purely textual descriptions of the remake, particularly those which seek to
ground the category in a rigid distinction between an original story and its
new discursive incarnation.154 Aside from the questionable move of assuming that the unchanging essence of a film’s story can somehow be
abstracted from the mutable disposition of its expression,155 demarcation
along the lines of story and discourse is evidently frustrated by those
remakes which repeat not only the narrative invention of an original property but seek, for instance, to recreate the expressive design of an earlier
film (for example, Far From Heaven as a recreation of Sirkian mise-en-scène)
or to rework the style of an entire oeuvre or genre (for example, Miller’s
Crossing (Joel Coen, 1990) as the ‘essential’ Hammett, or Body Heat as the
archetypal recreation of the film noir). More importantly, while it might
:
29
appear ‘an elementary and intuitively given fact that a story can be told in
different ways and remain, in an important sense, the same story’,156 the
identification of exactly which elements shall count as the fundamental
units of narrative in the determination of the similar and the same – that
is, in the identification of the remake and its original – becomes (especially
in the absence of a screen credit acknowledging an original property) a theoretical construct, or a function of the discursive context of the film’s production and reception. These ‘contextual forms of intertextuality’,157
which include film industry and other public discourses, shift attention
from purely textual markers to the identification of an interpretive frame.
That is, while a general narrative and cinematic competence enables the
construction of an intratextually determined hierarchy of story descriptions, which range from the most succinct to the most detailed, the construction of a particular intertextual relation between a remake and its
presumed original is an act of interpretation, one which is ‘limited and relative – not to a [viewing] subject but to the interpretive grid (the regime of
reading) through which both the subject position and the textual relations
are constituted’.158 Finally, and as Frow argues generally in relation to the
concept of intertextuality,159 what is important to an account of the
remake is not the detailed ‘identification of particular . . . intertextual
source[s]’, which function as retrospectively designated points of origin,
but the determination of ‘a more general discursive structure’ – the genre
of re-viewing labelled ‘remake’.
To sum up, it seems necessary to stress the need for detailed (historical)
investigation and research into the concept of film remaking, in both its
legal-industrial and critical-interpretive definitions. As Stern points out,
there may be no simple answer to what it is about the term ‘remaking’ that
makes it ‘peculiarly cinematic’, but the pursuit of just what defines film
remaking and characterises its intersection with other practices of repetition would need to include ‘[an engagement] with the industrial nature of
the cinema (questions of what constitutes a “property” and questions of
copyright, for instance), [an engagement with] the peculiarity of cinematic
genre, with the nature of cinematic quotation, and with how to conceive of
cinematic intertextuality as a question of cultural history’.160 Beyond
textual approaches to film remaking, beyond the identification of endlessly
proliferating patterns of repetition and difference, inquiries into the nature
of remaking would locate it (as has been argued above) not only in industrial fields and textual strategies, but in cinematic (and general) discursive
fields, in such historically specific technologies as copyright law and authorship, canon formation and media literacy, film criticism and film reviewing.
30
Reflecting the organisation of this introduction, this book draws out and
develops various approaches to film remaking across its three broad
sections. Part I develops the idea of remaking as an industrial category.
Chapter 1 (Commerce) takes up the case of the remaking of television
series as feature films in order to investigate the commercial strategies
behind the rebranding of previously market-tested properties such as The
Addams Family and Charlie’s Angels as new cross-media franchises.
Chapter 2 (Authors) takes this production-oriented approach further to
look at the way in which the film remake can be understood as a category
of authorship by investigating the case of Psycho and the general remaking
of the films of Alfred Hitchcock. Part II investigates remaking as a textual
category. Chapter 3 (Texts) attends to the question of the transformation
of earlier textualised sources by investigating issues of adaptation and
drawing these out through extended case studies of the remaking of
Yojimbo and Planet of the Apes. Chapter 4 (Genres) continues this
approach but attends to the remaking of broader generic structures by
investigating the case of the remaking of classic film noirs such as The
Postman Always Rings Twice and Double Indemnity. Part III casts an even
wider net to look at remaking as a critical category. Chapter 5 (Audiences)
looks at a wide range of contemporary remakes to consider the contribution that audience knowledge and industry discourses (publicity, exhibition, reviewing) make to an understanding of remakes. Chapter 6
(Discourse) further develops this contextual approach to investigate the
role of the film canon in a chain of remakings extending from Gun Crazy
and A bout de souffle to Bonnie and Clyde and Breathless. The book’s conclusion (Remaking Everything) at once extends and revisits some of these
issues by attending to the persona and films of arch-remaker Quentin
Tarantino.
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
Mazdon, Encore Hollywood, p. 2.
Grindstaff, ‘A Pygmalion Tale Retold’, p. 134.
Horton and McDougal, Play It Again, Sam, p. 3.
Stam, Film Theory, p. 202.
Wills, ‘The French Remark’, p. 148.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 84.
Whelehan, ‘Adaptations’, p. 3.
Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 51.
Altman, Film/Genre, pp. 83–4.
Ibid., p. 85.
Ibid., p. 120.
:
31
12. Frow, Marxism and Literary History, and ‘Intertextuality and Ontology’.
13. Stern, The Scorsese Connection, and ‘Emma in Los Angeles’.
14. See online reviews of Play It Again, Sam by Frow and Stern in Screening the
Past and Modernism/Modernity, respectively.
15. Altman, Film/Genre, p. 86.
16. Ibid., p. 84.
17. Ellis, Visible Fictions, p. 30.
18. Altman, Film/Genre, p. 112.
19. Bahrenburg, The Creation of Dino De Laurentiis’ King Kong, pp. 13 and
112–13.
20. Patterson, ‘Second Time Lucky’, p. 6.
21. Vincendeau, ‘Hijacked’, p. 24.
22. See Balio, ‘Introduction to Part II’; Hoberman, ‘Ten Years That Shook the
World’, pp. 34–59; and Silverman, ‘Hollywood Cloning’, pp. 24–30.
23. Schatz, ‘The New Hollywood’, pp. 17–25.
24. Hoberman, ‘Facing the Nineties’, pp. 1–2.
25. Simonet, ‘Conglomerates and Content’, p. 161.
26. Harvey, ‘Can’t Stop the Remakes’, pp. 50–3.
27. Miller, ‘Hollywood: The Ad’, pp. 59–62.
28. Murray, ‘Let’s Do It Again’, p. 64.
29. Hughes, ‘Apocalypse now. Please!’, p. 1.
30. Simonet, ‘Conglomerates and Content’, p. 154.
31. Cinefantastique, quoted in Kermode, ‘What a Carve Up!’, p. 14.
32. Stern, ‘Emma in Los Angeles’, p. 226.
33. Simonet, ‘Conglomerates and Content’, p. 155.
34. See Bellour, The Analysis of Film.
35. See Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, p. 36; Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 56; and
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 115.
36. See Friend, ‘Copy Cats’, pp. 51–7.
37. Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, p. 9.
38. Ibid.
39. Ibid.
40. Ibid.
41. Ibid.
42. Ibid.
43. Ibid., p. 13.
44. Balio, Grand Design, p. 99.
45. Robert Gustafson, quoted in ibid.
46. Ibid. See also Schatz, Boom and Bust, pp. 40–1 and 64–5.
47. Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, p. 15.
48. Ibid., pp. 18–20.
49. Balio, Grand Design, p. 100.
50. Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, p. 15.
51. Corrigan, ‘Which Shakespeare to Love?’, p. 163.
32
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
72.
73.
74.
75.
76.
77.
78.
79.
80.
81.
82.
83.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
89.
Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, pp. 13–15.
Lubin, Titanic, pp. 36 and 72.
Ibid., p. 120.
Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, p. 20.
Keller, ‘ “Size Does Matter” ’, p. 133.
Wyatt and Vlesmas, ‘The Drama of Recoupment’, p. 35.
McDougal, ‘The Director Who Knew Too Much’, p. 52.
Ibid., pp. 53 and 67.
Michaels, ‘Nosferatu’, p. 245.
Greenberg, ‘Raiders of the Lost Text’, p. 165.
Ibid., p. 170.
Ibid., pp. 166–7.
Bordwell, Making Meaning, p. 9.
Bloom, The Anxiety of Influence.
See Culler, The Pursuit of Signs, pp. 107–10; and Worton and Still,
‘Introduction’, pp. 27–9.
Greenberg, ‘Raiders of the Lost Text’, p. 170.
Corrigan, A Cinema Without Walls, p. 103. See also Corrigan, ‘Auteurs and the
New Hollywood’.
Corrigan, ‘Which Shakespeare to Love?’, p. 168.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 58.
Strick, ‘Rev. of Solaris’, pp. 54–5.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 84.
Eaton, ‘Condemned to Repeats’, p. 4.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 87.
Nowlan and Nowlan, Cinema Sequels and Remakes, pp. xi–xii.
Simonet, ‘Conglomerates and Content’, p. 156.
Eberwein, ‘Remakes and Cultural Studies’, pp. 28–31.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 138.
Ibid.
Ibid., p. 139.
Ibid., p. 142.
Ibid., pp. 142–5.
Ibid., p. 147.
Ibid., p. 139.
Druxman, Make It Again, Sam, p. 9.
The titles to The Assassin state that it is ‘based on Luc Besson’s “Nikita” ’ (the
latter was both written and directed by Besson). While the payment of copyright fees is generally the case, there are exceptions. For instance, Black Cat
(Stephen Shin, 1991), a Hong Kong film that closely follows the narrative
unfolding of Nikita, does not acknowledge Besson’s film.
Vincendeau, ‘Hijacked’, p. 24.
Newman, ‘Rev. of Just Visiting’, p. 47.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 139.
:
90.
91.
92.
93.
94.
95.
96.
97.
98.
99.
100.
101.
102.
103.
104.
105.
106.
107.
108.
109.
110.
111.
112.
113.
114.
115.
116.
117.
118.
119.
120.
121.
122.
123.
124.
125.
126.
127.
128.
129.
130.
131.
132.
33
Hoberman, ‘Sacred and Profane’; and Diski, ‘The Shadow Within’.
Vieira and Stam, ‘Parody and Marginality’, p. 94.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 39.
http://www.italianjobmovie.com/flash/index.html.
Corrigan, ‘Which Shakespeare to Love?’, p. 164.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 139.
See McElwee, ‘Theatrical Re-issues’.
Lafferty, ‘Feature Films on Prime-Time Television’, pp. 235–56.
Friedberg, Window Shopping.
Frow, ‘Intertextuality and Ontology’, p. 45.
Iampolski, The Memory of Tiresias, p. 8.
Ibid., p. 31, emphasis in original.
Ibid.
Ibid., pp. 32–5.
Frow, ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’, emphasis added.
Stam, Film Theory, p. 207.
Macksey, ‘Foreword’, p. xviii.
Wees, Recycled Images, pp. 32–48.
Thompson, ‘Songe de Titanic’, p. 66.
Stam, Film Theory, p. 209.
Ibid., p. 208.
Calabrese, Neo-Baroque, pp. 173–9.
Stam, Film Theory, p. 337, n. 2.
Grindstaff, ‘A Pygmalion Tale Retold’, p. 161.
Roth, ‘Twice Two’.
Georgakas, ‘Robin Hood’, p. 70.
Frow, ‘Intertextuality and Ontology’, p. 45.
Rosenbaum, ‘Rev. of Obsession’, p. 217.
Ray, A Certain Tendency of the Hollywood Cinema, pp. 119–20.
Michaels, ‘Nosferatu’, p. 241.
Friedberg, Window Shopping, pp. 175–6.
‘The Searchers: A Family Tree’, pp. 2–6.
Schrader commentary on Mishima, Warner Home Video, Region 1
DVD, 2001.
For example, Newman, ‘Rev. of The Big Chill’, p. 41.
Sayles and Smith, Sayles on Sayles, p. 57.
Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 51; and Genre and Hollywood, p. 31.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 91.
Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, p. 36.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 141.
Eco, ‘Innovation and Repetition’, pp. 161–84.
See Fish, Is There a Text in This Class?
Biguenet, ‘Double Takes’, p. 131.
Dowell, ‘Rev. of Unforgiven’, p. 72.
34
133.
134.
135.
136.
137.
138.
139.
140.
141.
142.
143.
144.
145.
146.
147.
148.
149.
150.
151.
152.
153.
154.
155.
156.
157.
158.
159.
160.
Hoberman, ‘Sacred and Profane’, p. 11.
Frow, ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’.
Carroll, ‘The Future of Allusion’, pp. 51–81.
Staiger, ‘The Politics of Film Canons’, p. 4.
Strick, ‘Rev. of A Kiss Before Dying’, p. 50.
Martin, ‘Soderbergh’s Planet Casts Psychic Spell’, p. 5.
Taubin, ‘Steven Soderbergh Follows Andrei Tarkovsky into Space for a
Walk with Love and Death’, p. 22.
Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, p. 40.
Stern, The Scorsese Connection, p. 198.
Ibid., pp. 49 and 170.
Ibid., p. 49.
Ibid., p. 58.
Ibid., pp. 33–4.
Frow, ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’.
Variety Movie Guide, p. 121.
Adair, ‘Rev. of Breathless’, pp. 241–2.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 127.
Wills, ‘The French Remark’, p. 157.
Carson, ‘Breathless Diary’, pp. 33–8.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, pp. 3–20; and Kline, Screening the Text,
pp. 184–221.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 84.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 143.
See Brunette and Wills, Screen/Play, p. 53; and Gabbard, ‘The Ethnic
Oedipus’, p. 96.
Culler, ‘Defining Narrative Units’, p. 123. See also Andrew, ‘Adaptation’,
p. 34; and Ray, ‘Film and Literature’, pp. 121–2.
Klinger, ‘Digressions at the Cinema’, p. 7.
Frow, Marxism and Literary History, p. 155.
Frow, ‘Intertextuality and Ontology’, p. 46.
Stern, ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’.
Part I Remaking as Industrial Category
CHAPTER 1
Commerce
A number of essays in the recent Thomas Elsaesser and Kay Hoffmann
anthology, Cinema Futures, consider the mutual dependence – both cultural
and economic – of the institutions of cinema and television.1 In particular,
Elsaesser describes two related strategies of media repetition. The first,
serialisation, is a textual strategy employed by both television (serials,
series, sagas) and cinema (series, sequels, remakes) to deliver and bind a
global audience to its product and its own institution. The second, multiplication, is a marketing strategy that connects these institutions, and their
audiences, beyond textual and national boundaries via adjacent discursive
fields.2 In other words, Elsaesser describes a globalised entertainment
industry (dominated by Sony, News Corp, Time-Warner and the like) in
which film and television franchises exceed boundaries (textual, national,
institutional) to be reiterated – expanded and exploited – across an array of
media platforms: from music and print media to theme parks and electronic games.3 This is, for instance, the strategy of the Batman remaking
(Tim Burton, 1989) of the television property and feature film of the 1960s
(Batman, ABC, 1966–68; and Batman, Leslie Martinson, 1966, respectively). Both versions (1960s and 1980s) have their foundation in Bob
Kane’s comic books for Detective Comics in the late 1930s, and the Burton
remake (earning $250 million domestically and $160 million overseas)
revived the franchise, spinning it out through sequels (Batman Returns,
1992; Batman Forever, 1995; Batman and Robin, 1997; Batman Begins,
2005) and a host of media texts (including a new Batman tele-series,
1992–95) and merchandising items.4
As described in the introductory chapter, remakes are often thought of as
commercial products that repeat successful formulas in order to minimise
risk and secure profits in the marketplace. Some properties, such as
King Kong (Peter Jackson, 2005), are selected for (commercial) remaking
because they are inherently spectacular and so suited to the developing
38
technological powers of (digital) film. Other properties are reworked to
offer up vehicles for top-line stars, or to open up and exploit new markets,
or (as in the example of Batman) to revive and create cross-media franchises. This chapter takes particular interest in the remaking of classic television series – such as The Addams Family, The Fugitive, The Flintstones,
Mission: Impossible, Charlie’s Angels and Scooby Doo – as new theatrical
features and potential cross-media platforms. On one hand, this cycle of
television remakes relates to cultural memory and to the archival function
of television, but on the other it seems a function of the conservative production and marketing strategies of a globally dominant (and, what critics
see as, artistically challenged) contemporary Hollywood. That is, since the
mid-1970s, the North American film industry invests – whether because of
‘creative atrophy, conglomerate domination, commercial timidity, or all
three at once’5 – in various strategies of recycling. In the case of television
remakes, critics despair at ‘the pillaging of television vaults for movie ideas’,
a tendency they characterise as ‘a kind of latter-day tomb raiding’.6 In the
context of defensive production practices, old television series (along with
comic books and computer games7) provide recognisable, and relatively
inexpensive, self-promotional devices with which to market and brand new
‘high-concept’ feature films and media franchises. For instance, producerstar Tom Cruise’s second instalment in the Mission: Impossible film series is
described as ‘a franchise in the making, taking over, perhaps, where James
Bond Inc. left off ’.8 Mission: Impossible and other successful properties generate then not only sequels – Addams Family Values, A Very Brady Sequel,
U.S. Marshals, The Flintstones in Viva Rock Vegas, Mission: Impossible 2,
Charlie’s Angels: Full Throttle, Scooby Doo 2: Monsters Unleashed – but
revived television series, music videos, film soundtracks, video games,
comic books and other brand-name products.
The term ‘television features’ is used in this chapter to refer to an industrial cycle of feature films, mostly from the 1990s (and beyond), derived
from television series of the late 1950s, 1960s and early 1970s. Variously
described as adaptations, updates, homages, remakes, recyclings, recreations, resurrections, sequels and spin-offs, these television features are
heavily imbricated – like the tele-series that inspire them – with patterns
of repetition. In the 1950s, the major Hollywood studios – restructuring in
their shift to independent production and in response to the emergence of
commercial television – gradually realised the potential for transferring
some of their mass production techniques to television, and began to
supply standardised episodic series to the major television networks.9
These tele-series constituted a form of television characterised by the
39
recurrence of a narrative scheme, a fixed situation with a restricted set of
regular pivotal characters – the Clampett family in The Beverly Hillbillies
(CBS, 1962–71), the castaways on Gilligan’s Island (CBS, 1964–67), the
three female detectives in Charlie’s Angels (ABC, 1976–81) – around which
a secondary set of characters revolved.10 In the example of The Beverly
Hillbillies the tele-series is a sitcom, a domestic comedy which unfolds in
the specific physical world of the Clampett’s mansion, and the ‘situation’
itself is built into this (principally) domestic space and develops there
through confusion and complication, eventually toward its resolution.11
More specifically, it has been noted that The Beverly Hillbillies, the most
popular television comedy of the 1960s, and a series which generated 216
half-hour episodes (or approximately ninety hours of television), can be
reduced to just five (repeated) narrative lines. These are:
1. shrewd city folks try to swindle Jed Clampett and family out of their
fortune;
2. variously inappropriate – corrupt and/or mercenary – suitors come
courting for the hand of Jed’s daughter, Elly May;
3. Jed’s moronic nephew, Jethro, tries his hand at various careers,
including international spy and brain surgeon;
4. Jed, a widower, meets a potential bride; and
5. Granny, the family matriarch, battles to protect her backwoods
traditions against the forces of post-industrial culture.12
While the above description already suggests strong patterns of textual
repetition in the US tele-series, it is necessary to make a distinction
between, on the one hand, thirty-minute sitcoms like The Beverly
Hillbillies and Gilligan’s Island, and on the other hand, sixty-minute actionadventure series like Maverick (ABC, 1957–62), The Fugitive (ABC,
1963–67) and Mission: Impossible (CBS, 1966–73). This is because, while
in the latter instance there is still a restricted set of characters – brothers
Bart and Bret Maverick (and sometimes their English cousin, Beau),
Dr Richard Kimble and his nemesis Lt Philip Gerard, or the members of
the IMF (Impossible Mission Force) team – other elements, such as situations, settings and adversaries (‘special guest stars’), can vary considerably. The more important point, though, is that in the case of the tele-series
(especially the variety found in the 1960s), the structure of each episode is
always basically the same, and ‘each episode contains a complete story,
[while] the series as a whole possesses no story’ (that is, there is no anticipated series conclusion).13 The episodes in the series can thus be produced
and ‘programmed infinitely’ (and to some extent broadcast in any order)
40
because ‘the [narrated] time of each episode’ (which can vary from the
space of a few hours to that of several weeks) ‘exists outside of history [or
historical time] and is identical to itself, and each episode has no recollection of the others’.14
While the above comments provide something of a model, it is immediately evident that some television series (especially more recent ones)
set up a more complex relationship between episode time, series time, and
narrated time. In order to accommodate this variation it is necessary to
turn to a second category of television, that of the saga. The saga differs
from the series (as described above) mostly in so far as it concerns ‘the
“historical” lapse of time’, or (in other words) the saga becomes a document of the history of its characters.15 In this case, the structure of individual episodes is substantially the same as before, but ‘the general time
of the series changes’: that is, ‘the entire series is constructed according
to a single narrative program that foresees a final solution, [but] each
episode is [still] produced according to [its own] working narrative
program’.16 Unlike the serial (most commonly associated with television
soap opera), where the overall narrative programme translates into
plot, in the case of the saga, the overall timescale is transformed into ‘a
mechanism of mutation that modifies the status of characters from
one episode to the next’, so encouraging viewers to keep up with the
changing knowledge of the characters.17 It is, therefore, difficult to miss
an individual episode without missing something of importance, but each
episode still has meaning for the more casual viewer. Examples of the saga
would be, then, programmes like The Life and Legend of Wyatt Earp
(ABC, 1955–61) which developed its characters over a period of several
years in an ongoing story of politics and family relations, alongside of its
standard, episodic Western action; or (more recently) Star Trek: The
Next Generation (syndicated, 1987–94), where each episode deals with a
particular mission of the starship Enterprise, but equally each episode is
organised around a number of sub-plots dealing with principally familial
relationships that develop across the entire series (Worf ’s connection to
his son; Deanna Troy’s relationship with her mother; the episode dealing
with Data’s ‘daughter’, and so on). In these cases, the character of the US
television series is such that it is able to produce an episodic narrative while
at the same time working toward a satisfying (if endlessly deferred)
finalised narrative.18 Moreover, from the late 1970s onwards, and
influenced by the ‘legitimisation’ of the serial form in the guise of primetime soap operas such as Dallas (CBS, 1978–91), Dynasty (ABC,
1981–89) and (differently) Twin Peaks (ABC, 1990–91), the tele-series
more often than not admits to a historical dimension.
41
The above comments begin to indicate how some aspects of repetition
can be understood as structural mechanisms for generating television texts,
but there is also the issue of how repetition translates into questions of programming and reception. That is, the seriality of the tele-series (or saga) is
not just textual, but can be further understood by way of the reception category of the rerun. Defined as the ‘repetition of a recorded performance’,19
the television rerun dates from 1953 when CBS first began putting repeats
of The Lone Ranger (ABC, 1949–57) on its Saturday afternoon schedule,
and the phenomenon gained intensity when, in 1957, CBS scheduled
reruns of I Love Lucy (CBS, 1951–57) five days a week during the
afternoon.20 Within the context of US television, this type of repetition can
mean either: (1) the syndicated rerun of a current network tele-series (or
sometimes a tele-series that has recently gone out of production) which is
sold on a station-by-station basis and aired at whatever time of the day
chosen by that station; or (2) reruns may be taken up by networks themselves, both as summer repeats and/or as fillers for the peripheral slots of
daytime or late night television (in other words, before or after prime
time).21 In the latter instance, series that formerly aired on a weekly basis
(and to fill thirty-nine weeks of programming) are often shown on a daily
basis, and sometimes on a continuous loop. Cheap and convenient time
fillers, these reruns can remain in circulation well beyond a series’ first-run,
and come to account for much of television’s programming time.
Additionally, some tele-series become ‘perennial rerun success stories’ and
others – like Leave It to Beaver in the 1980s and The Brady Bunch in the
early 1990s – enjoy ‘renaissances of sorts’.22
This relocation (or dislocation) of tele-series as reruns – the free mixing
of episodes outside of the chronology of their production – both underscores and complicates the (at least) minimal amount of temporal
continuity that does seem to exist in tele-series and/or sagas. That is,
removed from a context of linear, weekly and/or seasonal progression,
what are perhaps intended as subtle series developments can become quite
substantial intrusions.23 Furthermore, encountering a programme as
rerun rather than as first-run (even when the rerun is encountered as firstrun) underscores the fact that the programme refers principally to televisual conventions and to a personal and/or cultural history.24 This may in
turn encourage specific protocols of viewing. That is, if the repetitive
nature of the television text already encourages viewers to take pleasure
not so much in the programme’s limited narrative invention, but rather in
its repetition of character and motif, gesture and signature line, then the
repetition of the series as rerun has a further impact, encouraging an
intensification of what might be called a telephilic protocol of viewing,
42
one which celebrates or fetishises particular televisual moments.25
Additionally, and in what has been described as ‘an intense comedy
of obsolescence’,26 the tele-series as rerun, framed by contemporary televisual codes and practices, can be encountered as anachronism and as
cliché. This in turn may encourage – in specific viewing communities – a
kind of ironic sensibility or historically contingent category of cultural
taste commonly associated with the reading protocols of neo-camp, or
‘bad taste’.27 Such technologies of viewing are extended – especially from
the mid-1980s onward – by the expansion of cable television (which
repackages tele-series as nostalgia and/as high camp), and also by the
entrenchment of home video (and now DVD), which contributes
significantly to the archiving of tele-series. For instance, in 1985 the
Nickelodeon channel successfully introduced its Nick at Nite programming as a ‘friendly habitat’ for the showcasing of reruns (a move that coincided with the appearance of ‘evergreen’ divisions in other syndication
companies).28 These types of developments are in turn attended to by
such ephemera as cult television magazines (Cult TV), music compilations
(Television’s Greatest Hits) and web pages (both official and fan-based).
These endless repetitions – both textual and contextual – of tele-series
and/or sagas not only provide specific occasions for criticism, but generate
(and are generated by) other kinds of textual materials. These are not only
the paratexts or epiphenomena of the television guide and TV magazine, but
also texts produced through opportunities for merchandising. Initially, in the
1950s and 1960s, this included products like novelisations, comic books,
trading cards and board games, but Batman (ABC, 1966–68) extended this to
include over five hundred different ‘Bat-products’ (produced by more than
sixty manufacturers) that earned in excess of $60 million.29 More importantly (but linked to this), the ongoing circulation of television programmes
and other textual materials has generated what mostly get referred to as
extension or reunion episodes. These are typically two hours of television
(shown either as a single instalment or in two parts) which bring the original
cast (or most of the original cast) of a tele-series together – usually several
years after the show’s cancellation – for a special extended episode. This
extension (or reunion) episode can be characterised in the following ways:
1. The extension episode often operates as a kind of sequel to the teleseries, that is because actors – especially child-actors – age, the extension
episode addresses the historical lapse of time.
2. Commonly, the extension episode will deal with some special event
over and above the narrative invention that characterised the textual
repetitions of the tele-series.
43
3. Sometimes the extension episode will function as a pilot episode to generate the revival of the tele-series, or perhaps something like an animated version of that series.
4. Although initially shown in prime-time network slots, these extension
episodes (like some tele-series pilots) are, in foreign markets, often promoted and broadcast as televised movies.
Examples of extension episodes include programmes like: The Return of
the Beverly Hillbillies (CBS, 1981, broadcast ten years after the end of the
series’ first-run); Halloween with The Addams Family (NBC, 1977, broadcast eleven years after the end of that series); and The Wild, Wild West
Revisited and More Wild, Wild West (CBS, 1979 and 1980, broadcast ten
and eleven years after the end of the series’ first run).
A more elaborate example of the extension episode is the case of
Gilligan’s Island. The first-run of Gilligan’s Island was on the CBS network
from 1964 to 1967 and it generated 98 episodes in total. Ten years after
Gilligan’s Island first came to air, the ABC network launched The New
Adventures of Gilligan (1974–77), the first of two animated series. The following year (1978) the NBC network began a cycle of three extension
episodes. The first of these was Rescue From Gilligan’s Island, a two-hour
reunion episode screened as a two-part Saturday evening special (14 and
21 October 1978) in which the castaways of Gilligan’s Island (all original
cast members, except in the role of Ginger) are finally rescued from the
tropical desert island upon which they have been captive for ten years. Back
in civilisation, the castaways make the mistake of going on a reunion cruise
(on the SS Minnow II) and get shipwrecked again on the same island, thus
paving the way for a sequel. The second of the extension episodes – The
Castaways on Gilligan’s Island (NBC, 1979, 90 min.) – thus picks up from
the above, and rescued a second time the castaways (on this occasion) voluntarily return to the island in order to convert it (with the help of
Thurston Howell III’s millions) into a tourist resort. The third extension
episode – The Harlem Globetrotters on Gilligan’s Island (NBC, 1981,
120 min.) – has the famous basketball team drop in on the resort where they
join forces with the castaways to battle an evil billionaire who plans to use
‘Superium’, a rare energy source found on the island, to control the
world.30 These three extension episodes were immediately followed up by
Gilligan’s Planet (CBS, 1982–83), a second animated series (and kind of
extension of the earlier animated series) in which, in a desperate attempt
to get off the island, the Professor builds a rocket ship for the castaways but
a defect in its solar panels leads to them becoming marooned on an
unknown planet. 31 Scheduled alongside reruns, these extension episodes
44
and animated series have contributed to the programme’s ongoing cultural
currency, not only occasioning ‘appearances’ by Gilligan on The Simpsons
and South Park, but contributing to various intertextual dialogues.
Examples of the latter include conjecture in Dazed and Confused (Richard
Linklater, 1993) as to how the castaways might by now have partnered off
and spawned a whole mess of kids; a reference in The Brady Bunch Movie
(Betty Thomas, 1995) to Peter being a babe in ‘a Gilligan sort of way’, and
ongoing speculation as to whether Gilligan’s Island might not inspire a
new theatrically released, feature film with someone like Jim Carrey in
the Gilligan role. Most recently, Gilligan’s Island has been remade as a
reality TV programme – The Real Gilligan’s Island (TBS, 2004) – which
assembles two complete sets of castaways (contestants) to work through
elimination challenges (modelled on some of the situations that occurred
in the original series) and attempt to find a way off the island.32
A variation on the idea of the extension episode is the tele-series that is
transformed into a full-blown theatrically released feature film, complete
with big (or bigger) budget production values and promotional strategies.
Examples of the theatrically released extension episode include features
such as McHale’s Navy (Edward J. Montagne, 1964), McHale’s Navy Joins
the Air Force (Edward J. Montagne, 1965) and the Get Smart movie, The
Nude Bomb (Clive Donner, 1980). The latter, which was televised as The
Return of Maxwell Smart (NBC, 1982), is an unusual example of the
extension episode in so far as it brings together only Don Adams (Maxwell
Smart) and George Karvelas (Larraby) of the principal original cast. It is,
however, in its own way a clever extension of the TV series (and its spoof
of Cold War espionage). The Nude Bomb includes a title sequence in imitation of James Bond (complete with Bond-type title song, ‘You’re Always
There’ by Lalo Schifrin), Sylvia Kristel (between performances in the
Emmanuelle movies) as Smart’s partner Agent 34 and, as a set piece, a chase
through its production company’s (Universal’s) popular studio tour.
A second, more conventional reunion episode – Get Smart, Again (ABC,
1989) – brought together not only Adams and Karvelas, but Barbara
Feldon (as Agent 99) and Dick Gautier (as Hymie, the robot). And in 1995,
Fox briefly revived the tele-series Get Smart, with Maxwell Smart (Adams)
now chief of CONTROL, Agent 99 (Feldon) as a congresswoman, and
their son, Zach (Andy Dick), as a newly recruited CONTROL agent. 33
The best known and most successful of the theatrically released extension episodes is Star Trek: The Motion Picture (Robert Wise, 1979), and the
five Star Trek features that followed (from 1982 to 1991). As in the case of
broadcast extension episodes, Star Trek: The Motion Picture is the occasion
45
for a reunion: in this case, when news reaches Starfleet headquarters that
a malignant force within a cloud-like formation is headed for Earth, James
T. Kirk (now an Admiral) takes charge of his old starship Enterprise, is
reunited with his former crew and together they confront the alien menace.
The long-awaited, big-budget feature of the discontinued Star Trek teleseries (NBC, 1966–69) generated not only the aforementioned features but
also four further tele-series (Star Trek: The Next Generation, Deep Space
Nine, Voyager, Enterprise) and the first of these led to a further series of
feature films, most recently Star Trek Nemesis (Stuart Baird, 2002). A more
recent attempt to translate a tele-series into a fan-based Star Trek-like
franchise is The X-Files Movie (Rob Bowman, 1998), but in this case the
tele-series was still in production and the interrelatedness of Fox’s media
interests had merged to the point that the tele-series occasioned the
feature, but the feature directly generated the next season’s series. Other
attempts to transpose a still current tele-series into a feature film (with the
‘same’ cast and without a substantial gap between the broadcast time of the
first-run series and the release of the feature) include films such as Teenage
Mutant Ninja Turtles (Steve Barron, 1990) and its two sequels (1991 and
1993), and Mighty Morphin Power Rangers: The Movie (Bryan Spicer,
1995) and its sequel (1997). More recent examples include (but are not
limited to) The Rugrats Movie (Norton Virgien and Igor Kovalyov, 1999)
and sequels (2000 and 2003), South Park: Bigger, Longer & Uncut (Trey
Parker, 1999) and Jackass The Movie (Jeff Tremaine, 2002).
As described above, the extension episode creates a circuit with its teleseries reruns, sometimes providing the opportunity for a revived series. For
example, Still the Beaver, the 1983 CBS extension episode of Leave It to
Beaver (CBS 1957–58; ABC 1958–63), led to a new cable tele-series (again
with most members of the original cast) titled Still the Beaver (aka The New
Leave It to Beaver, Disney, 1985–86 and WTBS, 1986). But equally – and
in particular over the past decade or more – the rerun and the extension
episode, and especially the ways these continue to circulate as ‘snippets’
from the televisual past,34 have provided the occasion for an entire new cycle
of feature film versions of original tele-series (and other television properties). As Ina Rae Hark points out, whereas the aforementioned theatrically
released, extension episodes involved a transfer from one medium to
another, these new adaptations ‘involved remaking the television series as
films’.35 This cycle of remakings had precursors throughout the 1980s in
features such as The Legend of the Lone Ranger (William A. Fraker, 1981)
and Twilight Zone: The Movie (Joe Dante, John Landis, George Miller and
Steven Spielberg, 1983), Dragnet (Tom Mankiewicz, 1987) and The
Untouchables (Brian De Palma, 1987). But the cycle picked up momentum
46
with the successful release of The Addams Family (Barry Sonnenfeld, 1991),
which took $113 million at the US box-office.36 This cycle of features continued throughout the 1990s with films like: Addams Family Values, Dennis
the Menace, The Fugitive, The Beverly Hillbillies, Car 54, Where Are You?
(all 1993); The Flintstones, Maverick, The Cisco Kid, Lassie, The Little
Rascals, Richie Rich (all 1994); The Brady Bunch Movie, Casper (both 1995);
A Very Brady Sequel, Sgt. Bilko, Mission: Impossible, Flipper (all 1996); The
Saint, Mr. Magoo, McHale’s Navy, George of the Jungle, Leave It to Beaver
(all 1997); Lost in Space, The Avengers, The Mask of Zorro (all 1998); and
My Favorite Martian, The Mod Squad, Inspector Gadget, The Wild, Wild
West (all 1999). These remakings continue into the present decade with features such as: The Adventures of Rocky & Bullwinkle, Charlie’s Angels,
Mission: Impossible 2 (all 2000); I Spy, Scooby-Doo (both 2002); Charlie’s
Angels: Full Throttle, S.W.A.T. (both 2003), and Scooby-Doo 2: Monsters
Unleashed, Starsky & Hutch, Thunderbirds (all 2004).
At one level, this cycle of feature films – derived from tele-series (and
animated cartoon anthologies) that have ‘moulded the childhood aesthetics of baby-boomers and Gen-Xers alike’37 – relates to the archival function of television. But at another, it can be seen to respond (as previously
noted) to the conservative production and marketing strategies of
contemporary Hollywood, whereby tele-series of the 1960s and early
1970s provide recognisable, ‘bankably inexpensive, high-concept, selfpromotional devices with which to market feature films’.38 Old television
programmes have ready-made audiences on cable and DVD as well as fan
support on the Internet, and often boast ‘a strong set-up for a film and lend
themselves to clever updating’.39 David Marc adds that such properties
provide investors with the reassurance of a quantifiable track record,
including figures on ‘the profitability of the series in the syndicated rerun
market; the demographic character of its viewership; product licensing
reports; [and] public perception of the property’s position on the family
viewing/adult entertainment grid’.40 This seems generally true of the
features grouped above, which provide titles, character names (and sometimes situations) for ‘re-casting’. Moreover, an understanding of the phenomenon of tele-series remakes, or television features, can be taken further
by broadly identifying two commercial strategies for the remaking of these
old television properties.
The first strategy of remaking would seem to be an attempt to create a
circuit between, on the one hand, a generation (or two) of viewers who
encountered these tele-series as first-runs and/or reruns through the 1960s
and beyond (that is, an audience largely made up of parents and grandparents), and on the other hand a younger generation of filmgoers – children
47
and/or grandchildren of the first group – who may have little or no
knowledge of the original tele-series but whose narrative image of that property is developed through the feature film’s promotion and cross-promotion.
This ‘family viewing’ category of television features can be further divided
into two sub-sets: (1) a group of features derived from television sitcoms:
The Addams Family, The Beverly Hillbillies (Penelope Spheeris, 1993),
Dennis the Menace (Nick Castle, 1993), The Flintstones (Brian Levant, 1994),
The Brady Bunch Movie, Leave It to Beaver (Andy Cadiff, 1997), and My
Favorite Martian (Donald Petrie, 1999); and (2) a group of features based on
characters that (mostly) originate in media other than television (for example,
comics and theatrical shorts), but which nonetheless have a strong television
identity as children’s adventure series or animated cartoon series: The Little
Rascals (Penelope Spheeris, 1994), Richie Rich (Donald Petrie, 1994), Lassie
(Daniel Petrie, 1994), Casper (Brad Silberling, 1995), Flipper (Alan Shapiro,
1996), Mr. Magoo (Stanley Tong, 1997), George of the Jungle (Sam
Weisman, 1997) and Inspector Gadget (David Kellogg, 1999).
These features can be further categorised according to whether they are
remakes of live action tele-series or remakes of animated cartoon series,
although this is complicated by the fact that some – The Addams Family,
Dennis the Menace, The Brady Bunch, My Favorite Martian – are both. That
is, The Addams Family (ABC, 1964–66) was followed by an animated series
(The Addams Family, NBC, 1973–75), and a second animated series, also
titled The Addams Family (ABC, 1992–95), followed the release of the first
television feature. Dennis the Menace (CBS, 1959–63) was briefly revived as
an animated cartoon (CBS, 1987–88), and a second animated series,
The New Dennis the Menace (CBS, 1993–94), followed the release of the
feature film version. The Brady Bunch (ABC, 1969–74) ran in tandem with
The Brady Kids (ABC, 1972–74), a Saturday morning animated series
featuring the voices of the six Brady children. My Favorite Martian
(CBS, 1963–66) inspired an animated series, My Favorite Martians (CBS,
1973–75), which featured three Martians: uncle Martin, his nephew Andy
and their dog, Oakie Doakie.41 This initial grouping does, however, seem
consistent in so far as: (1) all the features are remakes of what were
thirty-minute tele-series or collections of animated cartoon series; (2) even
though several of these tele-series had a prime-time first-run, all of these
have also circulated as reruns in weekday afternoon and/or Saturday
morning viewing slots that identify them as ‘children’s television’; and
(3) these tele-series (and this is why remakes of Car 54, Where Are You?,
Sgt. Bilko and McHale’s Navy are excluded from this grouping) feature
children and animals, ghouls and aliens, which contribute to the remake’s
appeal, marketability and merchandising opportunities among its target
48
audience. Not surprisingly, these features are consistent, too, in their
release pattern, with both theatrical and home video releases coinciding
with school vacations and holiday seasons.
If this first production strategy is to take what were principally
thirty-minute sitcoms and animated cartoons, and remake them for a family
audience, then the second category is derived from mostly sixty-minute
prime-time television dramas, and the remake is pitched at cinema’s largest
target audience, the eighteen to twenty-four year old group. In this instance,
the tele-series as pre-sold property becomes the occasion for a big budget,
high-concept remake, complete with an emphasis on established genres,
production design, star image, special effects and attendant advertising and
merchandising campaigns. In this case (even more than the first), the formulaic combinations of television (serialisation) are extended not just linearly, but multi-dimensionally as the blockbuster becomes a point of
dispersal (multiplication) for cross-platform production: print materials,
recorded music, toy manufacture, fashion design, theme parks and (revived)
television series.42 This second ‘adult viewing’ category includes top-line
features such as: The Fugitive (Andrew Davis, 1993), Maverick (Richard
Donner, 1994), Mission: Impossible (Brian De Palma, 1996), The Saint
(Phillip Noyce, 1997), Lost in Space (Stephen Hopkins, 1998), The Avengers
(Jeremiah Chechik, 1998), The Mod Squad (Scott Silver, 1999), The Wild,
Wild West (Barry Sonnenfeld, 1999), Charlie’s Angels (McG [Joseph
McGinty Nichol], 2000) and Starsky & Hutch (Todd Phillips, 2004).
The dramatic tele-series upon which this second group draws have probably circulated less widely (on broadcast television) than the first, and are
characterised (as noted above) by their greater attention to the narrative plotting of individual series episodes. Accordingly, there is often less
attention in these remakes to the kind of sedimented detail that recurs in
the thirty-minute sitcom, and which gets expressed in a variety of ways in
the remakings. In the case of The Beverly Hillbillies feature this is the incorporation of four of the five aforementioned narrative lines, or in the examples of Sgt. Bilko and The Addams Family it is the repetition of a character’s
gesture (Ernie Bilko’s wave of the hands) or signature line (Gomez
Addams’s ‘Tish, that’s French’). Rather than drawing out the detail and/or
ambience of the tele-series, this second group of ‘high concept’ remakes (as
the label suggests) takes up the pre-sold title and basic premise – a man
wrongly accused of killing his wife becomes a fugitive from the law; a family
of inter-galactic travellers becomes lost in space, a group of delinquent
teenagers is recruited as a police mod-squad – and remakes it within the
parameters of a like contemporary genre: an action-pursuit adventure, a
science-fiction spectacular and an urban police drama, respectively. This
49
provides, too, the opportunity to extend the more humble means of the teleseries into, say, a star vehicle (Mel Gibson in Maverick, Tom Cruise in
Mission: Impossible, Owen Wilson and Ben Stiller in Starsky & Hutch) or
into a big special effects picture (the train derailment in The Fugitive, the
opening battle in Lost in Space, the martial arts sequences in Charlie’s
Angels). There may in these films still be the opportunity (as in the first category) for an intertextual joke, for instance television’s Bret Maverick
(James Garner) shows up as feature film Maverick’s (Mel Gibson’s) father;
several of the original cast members of Lost in Space appear in cameo roles
in the film’s opening sequences (June Lockhart as a school official, Mark
Goddard as a General, Marta Kristen and Angela Cartwright as reporters);
and Starsky and Hutch are given a new Ford Gran Torino by the original
Starsky and Hutch (Paul Michael Glaser and David Soul). But these are
(in the main) remakes less interested in recreating the detail of their originals than in adapting the (previously market tested) source material to
the conventions and expectations of the contemporary genre movie and/or
blockbuster.
As in the case of taxonomies generally, these two production tendencies – the family entertainment movie and the high-concept blockbuster –
for the remaking of tele-series admit to overlap and exclusion. For instance
(as noted above), the first grouping does not readily accommodate the mid1990s remaking of the thirty-minute police and military service sitcoms,
Car 54, Where Are You? (Bill Fishman, 1993), Sgt. Bilko (Jonathan Lynn,
1996) and McHale’s Navy (Bryan Spicer, 1997). In these examples, the
original tele-series do not have substantial pre-existing fan bases, nor the
appeal for young viewers of revived domestic (and/or fantasy) sitcoms and
adventure series. In the opposite direction, thirty-minute animated series
such as The Bullwinkle Show (1961–73) and Scooby Doo, Where Are You!
(1969–72) have had their title characters digitally recreated in the (otherwise) live action remakes The Adventures of Rocky and Bullwinkle (Des
McAnuff, 2000) and Scooby-Doo (Raja Gosnell, 2002). These films certainly hold appeal for child–parent units but are also pitched – in the
example of Scooby-Doo through the (re)casting of the teen-movie personas
of Freddy Prinze Jr, Sarah Michelle Gellar and Matthew Lillard in the roles
of Fred, Daphne and Norville – to a teenage and young adult audience.
No other series remaking focuses the tactics of the high-concept tendency of the television feature better than the recent Charlie’s Angels
(2000) and its sequel Charlie’s Angels: Full Throttle (McG, 2003). The 2000
feature film was developed from the five-season Aaron Spelling series
(Charlie’s Angels, ABC, 1976–81) about a trio of female crime-fighters who
work for the mysterious Charlie. Spelling had tried to revive the series as
50
Charlie’s Angels (McG, 2000). Courtesy Columbia/The Kobal
Collection/Darren Michaels.
Angels ’88 (a concept that got as far as casting and a rumoured, but never
seen, pilot), and in 1999 a thirteen-episode Spanish-language remake titled
Àngeles aired on Telemundo. Following these ventures, Sony had the
feature film in development for several years, testing the market with the
re-release of the original shows on video and a range of Charlie’s Angels gift
ideas (for Christmas 1997).43 When it finally did reach the big screen, the
feature’s impressive $40 million opening weekend box-office (in November
2000) was the biggest non-summer debut in movie history.44 A preview of
the Charlie’s Angels’ marketing machine that contributed to this result was
seen some nine months earlier when the (new) Angels – Dylan (Drew
Barrymore), Alex (Lucy Liu) and Natalie (Cameron Diaz) – appeared at
the Academy Awards, ‘all frocked-up and sexy’, to present an Oscar.45
Momentum built in the lead up to the US opening with such events as the
world premiere of the theatrical trailer on Entertainment Tonight, the
release of the song (and music video) ‘Independent Woman, Pt 1’ by
Destiny’s Child, and the attendant publicity from such ephemera as
spreads in Elle, Mademoiselle and Jane magazines, featuring fashions
inspired by the TV series.46 As Mariana Mogilevich points out, the highconcept premise – ‘three beautiful crime-fighting babes fight crime and
look hot’ – anchored in, and multiplied through, tie-ins and media hype
makes the film text the lubricant that oils the machine: ‘there are so many
51
threads anchoring [Charlie’s Angels] in our collective unconscious . . . that
one hardly needs to see the film to, in a way, have already seen it’.47
Aside from its basic premise, and the original’s strategy of putting the
Angels into a host of sexually suggestive undercover poses – prison gang
inmates, showgirls, prostitutes – the remake is less concerned with transforming this material into a new textual unit than with engaging in a constellation of televisual images and an expanding array of multimedia texts.
As Mogilevich describes it, Charlie’s Angels ‘is not a closed, finite work, but
rather a footnote, a set of citations’.48 Accordingly the film lifts sounds and
images not only from the Charlie’s Angels tele-series (notably a chain-gang
routine from the ‘Angels in Chains’ episode), but also snippets from movies
and grabs of popular music. For instance, Bosley’s (Bill Murray’s) imprisonment in the tower references – in the space of seconds – The Birdman of
Alcatraz (John Frankenheimer, 1962), The Great Escape (John Sturges,
1963) and Take the Money and Run (Woody Allen, 1969), and the soundtrack includes not only a host of ‘angel’ songs – ‘Angel of the Morning’,
‘Heaven Must be Missing an Angel’, ‘Undercover Angel’ – but features
such episodes as Drew Barrymore’s ‘Billie Jean’ moonwalk rip. In addition
to this, Charlie’s Angels makes reference to the very practice of remaking
tele-series. In the opening airplane sequence, the character played
by LL Cool J, having discovered that the in-flight entertainment is
T. J. Hooker: The Movie, complains: ‘[not] another movie from an old TV
show’. His reaction – he is in fact Angel Dylan (Barrymore) in Mission:
Impossible-type disguise – is to ‘walk out’, dropping himself (and the audience) into a gob-smacking parachuting and water rescue action sequence.
The net effect is to announce itself to a knowing (and perhaps cynical)
youth-audience as an exuberant high-concept remaking: a repetition
informed as much by (television) serialisation as it is by (cross-media)
amplification and multiplication.
While the example of Charlie’s Angels (and the above account of two broad
production strategies) say something about commercial approaches to
remaking tele-series as feature films and adapting them to a theatrical film
market, each of the groupings nonetheless reveals various (and different)
approaches for transforming the narrative invention of the source materials. As Marc points out, the nature of long-running tele-series was such
that the major investment for viewers was not the narrative, the basic setup of which was left untouched from one week to another, but rather the
milieu and characters (and the way television personalities came to inhabit
these).49 This provides a unique problem for remakers, and narrative
strategies range from the adaptation of particular series episodes (or parts
52
thereof) to the invention of entirely new narrative situations for recycled
characters and milieus. In the first instance, the strategy for adaptation
includes the replaying of the narrative invention of: (1) a tele-series pilot,
for example Lost in Space remakes its first episode, ‘The Reluctant
Stowaway’; (2) a specific series episode, for example Leave It to Beaver
remakes the episode titled ‘Beaver’s Bike’; or (3) several series episodes, for
example The Brady Bunch Movie remakes, among others, episodes titled,
‘The Tattletale’, ‘Her Sister’s Shadow’, ‘The Not So Rose Coloured
Glasses’, ‘Getting Davy Jones’, ‘Dough-Re-Mi’, ‘The Subject was Noses’,
‘Amateur Night’, ‘Alias Johnny Bravo’ and ‘Try, Try Again’.50 In some
cases, the feature’s borrowings of narrative elements may be even more
particular; for example, Kim Newman notes that The Avengers takes, from
the ‘A Surfeit of H2O’ episode, its narrative kernel concerning the weather,
but also lifts such things as the disorienting labyrinth from ‘The House
that Jack Built’, the tropical enclave from ‘Small Game for Big Hunters’,
an invisible spy from ‘The See Through Man’, and so on.51 In other cases,
the feature eschews the narrative invention of its tele-series altogether, creating new situations for familiar characters. For example, Mission:
Impossible deals with a new assignment for Jim Phelps’s IMF team; The
Saint takes up the latest challenge for gentlemanly thief, Simon Templar;
the Angels’ new assignment reveals a plot to kill Charlie. In some instances
(and viewed more cynically), the recycling of the narrative might be of no
consequence, but (in the case of Charlie’s Angels) ‘a mere peg on which to
hang a series of showy action sequences and [remembering that star Drew
Barrymore was also co-producer] a succession of stardom-enhancement
moments for the leads’.52 Additionally, in some cases the feature-as-remake
may adopt narrative strategies more typical of the ‘retake’ or sequel. For
instance, the Angels play the next generation in the same all-female detective agency. And in Maverick and McHale’s Navy, the entire narrative is
retrospectively coded as a family saga, that is the closing segments of these
two films explain that James Garner and Ernest Borgnine (television’s
Maverick and McHale, respectively) are in fact fathers to Mel Gibson (Bret
Maverick) and Tom Arnold (Quint McHale).
In addition to these various textual strategies, it is necessary to realise
that while some of these feature films remake properties that formerly have
a (principally) television identity, others draw upon multiple sources and
in some ways resist being categorised as remakes of television properties.
It would seem (as is the case with film remakes generally) that a textual
marker – acknowledgement in the form of a credit – would be the surest
arbiter of what would (or would not) count as a remake of a tele-series. In
many instances this is the case: the credits of McHale’s Navy state that it
53
is ‘based on the television series’; the credits of Leave It to Beaver read:
‘based on the TV series created by Bob Mosher and Joe Connelly’; the
credits for Sgt. Bilko read: ‘based on the television series created by Nat
Hiken’; and so on. In other instances, it is the character(s) rather than the
programme which get the acknowledgement: The Brady Bunch Movie is
based on characters created by Sherwood Schwartz; The Fugitive is based
on characters created by Roy Huggins; The Addams Family on characters
created by Charles Addams; Dennis the Menace on characters created by
Hank Ketcham; Dick Tracy on characters created by Chester Gould. The
difficulty here is that while in the first two instances – The Brady Bunch and
The Fugitive – these characters are created for television, in the latter
instances the characters originate in other media: the Addams Family in a
cartoon; Dennis the Menace in a comic strip; and Dick Tracy originates as
a character in a newspaper comic strip but is featured in a radio series
(1935–48), a fifteen-chapter movie serial (1937), several feature films (late
1930s and 1940s), a live action tele-series (early 1950s) and animated cartoons for television (1960s), before eventually making it (back) into feature
films as Dick Tracy (Warren Beatty, 1990). This final example – the case of
Dick Tracy – holds for several other features – The Legend of the Lone
Ranger, Mr Magoo, The Saint and even The Mask of Zorro (Martin
Campbell, 1998) – all of which might be considered remakes of tele-series
but which originate in media other than, and have strong identities outside
of, television.
The question of identifying remakes of tele-series becomes, then, not
simply one of textual evidence, or even of legally sanctioned use (in the
form of a copyright credit), but rather a question of how these properties
continue to circulate – as texts and as memories – and how they are
identified in film industry and other public discourses, such as film reviewing and media coverage. Accordingly, there would be a strong argument for
including The Addams Family as part of a 1990s cycle of remakes of television series, even though it acknowledges (in its credits) only the Charles
Addams characters from which the tele-series is derived. As reviewers of
the feature have pointed out, the film’s director, Barry Sonnenfeld, claims
he ‘never cared much’ for the TV programme and that he placed more
emphasis on evoking the style of the old cartoons.53 Sonnenfeld’s feature
in fact begins – in imitation of one of Charles Addams’s most famous New
Yorker cartoons – with the ‘eponymous ghouls preparing to pour boiling
oil over an unbearably merry group of carol singers’.54 But the employment
of features like Vic Mizzy’s original TV theme and performances by lead
players Anjelica Huston and Raul Julia (as Morticia and Gomez Addams),
which develop the former performances of Caroline Jones and John Astin,
54
coupled with things like advertising copy and film reviews that refer back
to the tele-series, ensure that the film has a strong television identity. The
Addams Family feature, in fact, becomes pivotal in an ongoing dialogue
between television and feature film. Against the backdrop of continuing
reruns of the original ABC tele-series, the success of the first feature
prompted the release of a (second) animated cartoon series, also titled The
Addams Family (ABC, 1992–95). This was accompanied by a second, theatrically released feature film, Addams Family Values (Barry Sonnenfeld,
1993), and the two features were, in turn, followed up with a directto-video feature (with different lead actors) titled Addams Family Reunion
(1998) and then The New Addams Family (Fox, 1998–99), an updated 1990s
version of the original The Addams Family tele-series.
These arguments would seem true of television features derived from
characters that have an even stronger presence in other media, say the Lone
Ranger, The Saint or even Batman, but they can be equally persuasive in
the opposite direction. For instance, the release of the 1990 version of Dick
Tracy was accompanied by a well-publicised record of Warren Beatty’s
effort to capture the detail of a fictional world created in comic strips by
Chester Gould: ‘to spare no expense to reproduce the primary colour
scheme, the two-dimensional characters, the abstract décor of that
world’.55 This translates, in the context of high concept, into an emphasis
on production design, but also an endeavour in Beatty’s version to surpass
all earlier adaptations – including the 1950–51 tele-series with Ralph Byrd
(who had already played Tracy in serials and feature films) – by returning
to the ‘authority’ of the original comic strips for its characters and most of
its visual style. By contrast, and for different viewerships, the principal
identity of a feature like Flipper (Alan Shapiro, 1996) might (variously)
reside in the 1964–67 tele-series, or the updated 1995 tele-series, or even
in the 1963 feature film that preceded both. But other viewers might see it
(generically) alongside a cycle of 1990s films featuring semi-domesticated
aquatic animals, such as Andre (George Miller, 1993) and especially Free
Willy (Simon Wincer, 1993), its sequels (Free Willy 2: The Adventure
Home, 1995 and Free Willy 3: The Rescue, 1997) and animated tele-series
(Free Willy, ABC, 1994).56 The difficulty encountered here applies equally
to the likes of The Mask of Zorro, not only because of the character’s many
incarnations – different audiences would remember Zorro as played by
Douglas Fairbanks Sr (1920), Tyrone Power (1940), Guy Williams
(1957–59), Frank Langella (1974), even George Hamilton (in Zorro, the
Gay Blade, 1981) – but also because this most recent feature (like the
Hamilton version) operates as much as a sequel as a remake. The murkiness of origins becomes even more pointed when arguing for the inclusion
55
of features such as Wyatt Earp (Lawrence Kasdan, 1994) or the 1994 Lassie
movie, films that deal with ‘characters’ who circulate in the public domain
over and above their particular realisations in historic and/or fictional
documents. And yet even in these cases textual and contextual factors work
to encourage some identifications over and above others. At the beginning
of Lassie, a clip from the CBS television series (1954–74) is seen playing in
the Turner home, prior to the family adopting a stray Collie they name
Lassie. And the 1994 version of Wyatt Earp coincided with Wyatt Earp:
Return to Tombstone (1994, CBS), a two-hour extension episode of the teleseries The Life and Legend of Wyatt Earp, that brings back Hugh O’Brien
as Earp – forty years later – by digitally combining new footage with
colourised segments from the original series.
To conclude, the industrial imperative behind the remaking of television
properties is perhaps nowhere more evident that in those (commercially)
successful features which realise the potential for transferring the serial
methods of television into the feature film sequel and franchise. The 2003
Charlie’s Angels sequel – Charlie’s Angels: Full Throttle – provides one of
the most recent and profitable examples, taking over $100 million at the US
box-office and spinning further profits in overseas markets and through
DVD sales and rentals. Textually speaking, the sequel provided opportunities for the ‘three crazy beautiful girls’ (to quote a Mongol from the film’s
Indiana Jones-type overture) to put on display all that had pleased audiences
of the first instalment. For many reviewers this resulted in a film even more
incoherent than the first, but one that furthered its strategy, not so much of
recycling the television series, but of recycling everything to provide ‘a
garish compost heap of pop-culture references’.57 More pointedly, the
sequel enabled Sony to extend the franchise through the Charlie’s Angels:
Full Throttle Play Station 2 game, the Angel X online game and a prequel
to Charlie’s Angels: Full Throttle in the form of Charlie’s Angels Animated
Adventures. The latter – delivered online58 – was a series of six, two-minute
animated cliffhangers written by Full Throttle associate producer Stephanie
Savage and designed to ‘capture the essence of the film [by] incorporating
visual references from the movie into its story-line’.59 Further profits were
generated by a wide range of official (licensed) products, including bobblehead figurines, lunch boxes, shot glasses, women’s T-shirts, mini-purses,
back packs and a Full Throttle book for pre-teen readers. The example of
the Charlie’s Angels franchise underlines the (earlier) point that the linearity of serial-time (of serialisation), and the relationship between TV series
and TV features, is complicated by a multi-dimensional strategy of media
repetition (of multiplication). Finally, Charlie’s Angels, and the example of
56
the television feature generally, suggests some of the ways in which industrial and commercial approaches can contribute to – but do not exhaust –
an understanding of cinematic remaking.
Notes
1. See Elsaesser, ‘Fantasy Island’; Eaton, ‘Cinema and Television’; Ellis,
‘Cinema and Television’.
2. Elsaesser, ‘Fantasy Island’, pp. 143–58.
3. Schatz, ‘The Return of the Hollywood Studio System’, pp. 73–5.
4. Ibid., pp. 93–4; and Meehan, ‘ “Holy Commodity Fetish, Batman!” ’, p. 49.
5. Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 247.
6. Maddox, ‘Television a Tomb with a View’.
7. See Atkinson, ‘Delirious Inventions’, pp. 12–16.
8. Hawker, ‘Rev. of Mission: Impossible 2’, p. 5.
9. See Anderson, Hollywood TV.
10. Eco, The Limits of Interpretation, p. 85.
11. See Marc, Comic Visions, pp. 84–154.
12. Marc, ‘Sibling Rivalry’, p. 8.
13. Calabrese, Neo-Baroque, p. 35.
14. Ibid.
15. Eco, The Limits of Interpretation, p. 87.
16. Calabrese, Neo-Baroque, p. 37.
17. Ibid., p. 38, emphasis added.
18. Ibid., p. 38.
19. Nelson, ‘The Dislocation of Time’, p. 81.
20. Simon, ‘The Eternal Rerun’, p. 51.
21. Nelson, ‘The Dislocation of Time’, p. 81.
22. Williams, ‘The Evolution of the Television Rerun’, p. 173.
23. Nelson, ‘The Dislocation of Time’, p. 85.
24. Ibid., p. 84.
25. See Willemen, ‘Through the Glass Darkly’, pp. 229–30.
26. Marc, Demographic Vistas, p. 8.
27. See Sconce, ‘ “Trashing” the Academy’, pp. 371–80.
28. Williams, ‘The Evolution of the Television Rerun’, p. 173.
29. Javna and Javna, 60s!, p. 216.
30. Marc and Thompson, Prime Time, Prime Movers, pp. 38–48.
31. McNeil, Total Television, p. 327.
32. Carter, ‘Marooned Again with Gilligan’, p. 19.
33. McNeil, Total Television, p. 324.
34. Marc, ‘Sibling Rivalry’, p. 6.
35. Hark, ‘The Wrath of the Original Cast’, p. 173.
36. O’Hehir, ‘Gleaning the Tube’, p. 18.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
57
Ibid., p. 16.
Marc, ‘Sibling Rivalry’, p. 6.
Maddox, ‘Television a Tomb with a View’.
Marc, ‘Sibling Rivalry’, p. 8.
See McNeil, Total Television; and Brooks and Marsh, The Complete Dictionary
to Prime Time Network and Cable TV Shows.
Elsaesser, ‘Fantasy Island’, pp. 146–8 and 157.
‘Puppet Love’, p. 32.
McCarthy, ‘Where Angels Don’t Fear to Tread’, p. 7.
Perkin, ‘Charlie Who?’, p. 18.
Tulloch, ‘Flipping Out Over Angels Remake’, p. 1.
Mogilevich, ‘Charlie’s Pussycats’, p. 38.
Ibid., p. 39.
Marc, ‘Sibling Rivalry’, p. 8. See also Hark, ‘The Wrath of the Original Cast’,
p. 176.
Eisner and Krinsky, Television Comedy Series, pp. 146–52.
Newman, ‘Rev. of The Avengers’, p. 39.
Medhurst, ‘Rev. of Charlie’s Angels’, p. 44.
Newman, ‘Rev. of The Addams Family’, p. 37.
Ibid.
Combs, ‘Rev. of Dick Tracy’, p. 216.
Newman, ‘Rev. of Flipper’, p. 44.
Hoberman, ‘They’re Back’.
http://www.animatedangels.com.
Sony press release quoted at http://www.charliesangels.com.
CHAPTER 2
Authors
Much of the talk leading up to, and following, the release of Gus Van Sant’s
1998 remake – or ‘replica’ – of the Alfred Hitchcock film Psycho (1960) was
an expression of outrage and confusion at the defilement of a beloved
classic. For instance, and most prominently, the ‘Psycho: Saving a Classic’
website described the remake as a ‘disgrace’ and urged audiences to express
their dissatisfaction by boycotting the opening weekend.1 Reviewers and
‘Hitchcockians’ alike agreed that Van Sant had made two fundamental
mistakes: the first was to have undertaken to remake a treasured landmark
of cinematic history; and the second to have followed the Hitchcock original (almost) shot by shot, line by line. As a reviewer for the New York Post
remarked: ‘if you’re going to be hubristic enough to remake Psycho, you
should at least have the courage to put your own spin on it’.2 But even for
those who noted that the shooting script for the remake was only about
ninety per cent the same as Hitchcock’s,3 Van Sant’s revisions were thought
to have added nothing to what remained (for them) an intact and undeniable classic, a semantic fixity against which the new version was evaluated
and dismissed as a degraded copy. For these fans and critics – for these reviewers – the Psycho remake was ultimately nothing more than a blatant
rip-off: not only an attempt to exploit the original film’s legendary status,
but (worse) a cheap imitation of ‘one of the best and best known of
American films’.4
This reaction to Van Sant’s Psycho remake is consistent with the vast
majority of critical accounts of film remakes which understand remaking
as a one-way process: a movement from authenticity to imitation, from the
superior self-identity of the original to the debased resemblance of the
copy. Critics and viewers privileged the ‘original’ Psycho over its remake,
measuring the success of the Van Sant remake according to its ability to
realise what were taken to be the essential elements of the Hitchcock
text. Rather than follow these reductive trajectories, this chapter adopts
59
a broader approach to the concept of remaking, which – in its more general
application – might be regarded as a specific aspect of a wider and more
open-ended intertextuality. As Lucy Mazdon inquires: ‘how can it be possible to criticise the remake as non-original, as a [degraded] copy, when all
films [once inserted in an ongoing dialogical process] can in some way be
seen as copies?’5 Approached in this way, remaking might refer to any
number of cultural and industrial activities, ranging from practices of allusion and quotation, to the patterns of repetition (and variation) that attend
the process-like nature of genre and serial filmmaking. As a particular
instance of this logic of cinematic repetition, the Psycho remake is a text
initiated, negotiated and stabilised – but never totally limited – by a series
of technologies, such as copyright law and authorship, that are essential to
the existence and identification of film remakes.
In recognition of these arguments around the nature of cinematic
remaking, this chapter seeks to sketch a broad circuit between Psycho 60 and
Psycho 98, focusing in particular on remaking as a category of authorship,
and on Hitchcock’s status as one of cinema’s most celebrated and
influential practitioners. Rather than accept the negative view of the
majority of descriptions of the Psycho remake, this chapter seeks to understand both versions of Psycho as ‘aspect[s] of a much wider process of cinematic reproduction’.6 The chapter falls into four parts. The first looks at
Alfred Hitchcock’s artistic and authorial persona, and the way in which the
author remakes himself (and Psycho) across a vast body of film and television work. The second part attends to Hitchcock’s legacy to the horror
genre (especially the contemporary slasher film), and to how the Psycho
sequels of the 1980s – Psycho II, III and IV – revisit (and remake) not only
their precursor but the conventions of the slasher movie genre. The third
section looks at the canonised figure of Alfred Hitchcock and the nature of
cinematic homage, specifically as it plays out across three films by Brian De
Palma – Dressed to Kill (1980), Blow Out (1981) and Body Double (1984) –
that remake aspects of Psycho. The fourth and final part considers the
ongoing influence that Alfred Hitchcock, and his masterpiece Psycho, have
had on contemporary art and popular film, in particular Pierre Huyghe’s
Remake (1995), Douglas Gordon’s 24 Hour Psycho (1993) and Gus Vant’s
Psycho 98 replica.
Psycho is by no means the first or the only film of Alfred Hitchcock’s to be
remade.7 For instance, direct, acknowledged remakes of films from
Hitchcock’s early ‘British period’ include such titles as: The Thirty-Nine
Steps (Hitchcock, 1935; Ralph Thomas, 1956; Don Sharp, 1978); The Lady
Vanishes (Hitchcock, 1938; Anthony Page, 1979); and Hitchcock’s own
60
1956 American remake of his earlier, The Man Who Knew Too Much
(1934). Many other Hitchcock films – including Notorious (1946),
Strangers on a Train (1951) and Rear Window (1954) – have been remade
for television, and recent theatrically released films include the A Perfect
Murder (Andrew Davis, 1998) remake of Dial M for Murder (1954), and a
new version of Sabotage (1936) filmed under the title of its source material, The Secret Agent (Christopher Hampton, 1996). This type of remaking
can be understood as a function of industry and commerce, a type of economic pragmatism whereby existing films are thought to minimise risk by
providing successful formulas for the development of new studio (or television) based projects. In a commercial context, Van Sant’s Psycho remake
is pre-sold to its audience, with viewers not only expected to recognise the
title but assumed to have some prior experience of the original Psycho, one
of the most widely known and profitable films of all time. Even viewers
with no direct experience of Psycho are likely to possess a ‘narrative image’
of the film,8 or have some familiarity with the famous shower sequence
and/or Bernard Herrmann’s musical accompaniment of shrieking violins.
This commercial orientation, whereby a new film seeks to duplicate past
success and reduce risk by emphasising the familiar, might account for the
ubiquity of (Hollywood) remakes. But Hitchcock’s revision of The Man
Who Knew Too Much suggests, too, that remaking might be located in a film
maker’s desire to repeatedly express and modify a particular aesthetic sensibility and world view in light of new developments and interests.9 This
view is supported by Michael Tarantino who notes that during the early
1940s (the period in which Hitchcock was under contract to producer
David Selznick) there was talk of remaking not only The Man Who Knew
Too Much but also The Lodger (1926), The Thirty-Nine Steps and The Lady
Vanishes.10
Stuart McDougal takes up this type of authorial approach to remaking,
describing Hitchcock as a director ‘who was continuously and obsessively
remaking his own work’.11 This results not only in the ongoing repetition
of cinematic techniques (shots, transitions and sequences) and underlying
themes (pursuit and rescue, guilt and punishment), but also in ‘loose’
remakings, for example the revision of The Thirty-Nine Steps, first as
Saboteur (1942) and again as North by Northwest (1959).12 In the more
direct remaking of The Man Who Knew Too Much, Hitchcock transforms
his earlier version not only in recognition of prevailing ‘social, political and
geographical dynamics’, but through the personal (authorial) filter of a
more mature film maker, to create a work structurally similar to, but thematically more consistent, than the original.13 The sense of cohesion across
Hitchcock’s body of work is not only evident at the level of a particular shot
61
or individual film, but also at a broader, generic level. For instance, Robert
Kapsis notes that while Hitchcock’s reputation as a director of thrillers can
be traced back to The Lodger and Blackmail (1929), the 1934 version of The
Man Who Knew Too Much inaugurated a cycle of six British thrillers now
known as the ‘classic thriller sextet’.14 The high degree of continuity and
consistency across these six films – The Man Who Knew Too Much, The
Thirty-Nine Steps, The Secret Agent (1936), Sabotage (1936), Young and
Innocent (1937) and The Lady Vanishes – can be attributed to the house
style of British Gaumont, but it also supports McDougal’s claim that
‘Hitchcock remade his early work in a variety of ways, combining . . . the
expressive potential of film with a desire for technical perfection’.15 Indeed,
McDougal argues that it was Hitchcock’s dissatisfaction with the climax of
the earlier version of The Man Who Knew Too Much that led, first, to its
disguised and limited remaking in the ending of The Thirty-Nine Steps and
later to its official and direct remaking in The Man Who Knew Too Much.16
And, more recently, Laura Mulvey has suggested that ‘Psycho takes the
plots that characterised Hitchcock’s English thriller series, which he continued to recycle in Hollywood, and uses them in a way that is shocking
both in its novelty and in its strange familiarity’.17 These comments, and
the example of the classic thriller sextet, would appear to suggest that
Hitchcock’s authorship ‘lies in his ability to continually remake or recombine a basic repertory of narrative situations and cinematic techniques,
thus creating a characteristic “world” ’.18
Although Psycho might be seen as an amalgamation – a revision – of the
bleaker tone of (the slightly earlier) The Wrong Man (1957) and the ironic,
anti-romance of Vertigo (1958), several critics claimed that it ‘marked a
darkening in the world view of the director [Hitchcock]’.19 Psycho certainly
appears to be a departure from the interests and conventions of the ‘standard’ Hitchcock thriller, especially the lavish, Hollywood productions of the
1950s – The Man Who Knew Too Much, To Catch a Thief (1955) and North
by Northwest – that immediately preceded it. Hitchcock purchased the film
rights to Robert Bloch’s (then recently published) novel Psycho in 1959, but
unable to secure an agreement under his existing contract with Paramount,
he turned to Universal Studios, where his television series, Alfred Hitchcock
Presents (CBS, 1955–65), was being filmed. Working within the constraints
of a low budget, Hitchcock approached Psycho as an experiment in the
making of a feature film along the lines of an expanded television episode,
employing some of his regular television crew and working with multiple
camera set-ups.20 Both Kapsis and James Naremore point to a number of
continuities between Hitchcock’s television work and Psycho, including
such features as the film’s ‘black-and-white photography, the moments of
62
suspense, the sardonic wit and macabre humour, the ordinariness of its
characters and the drabness of its setting’.21 Naremore argues that Psycho
was ‘clearly influenced’ by the format of Alfred Hitchcock Presents, and even
finds in the film’s first minutes ‘some echoes’ of ‘Banquo’s Chair’, a 1959
episode of the television series ‘which opens [like Psycho] with the camera
travelling across a row of buildings and moving in toward a doorway while
words announce an exact place, date, and time’.22 In addition to this,
Hitchcock’s introduction and epilogue for each of the episodes for Alfred
Hitchcock Presents had made him something of a household name. As Kapsis
points out, the publicity campaign for Psycho – which included a six-minute
trailer featuring Hitchcock leading a ‘tour’ through the Bates house and
motel23 – would have given audiences familiar with the television series
every reason to believe ‘that Psycho would be in the tradition of Hitchcock’s
macabre little teleplays’.24
Psycho opened in the summer of 1960 to mixed critical reactions but
immediately began to break box-office records, rapidly developing into a
national phenomenon. Stephen Rebello states that ‘Psycho tapped into the
American subconscious’ provoking: ‘Faintings. Walk-outs. Repeat visits.
Boycotts. Angry phone calls and letters’.25 Psycho’s massive domestic and
international success ensured that it was one of the most talked about films
of 1960, cited in discussions on a range of topics, including ‘the rise in
crime; the decline in sales of opaque shower curtains; the alarming
upswing in violence, particularly toward women; [and] the downturn in
motel stays’.26 Psycho immediately spawned a number of imitations:
Rebello makes note of William Castle’s Homicidal (1961), and Kolker
describes J. Lee Thompson’s Cape Fear (1962) as ‘a film that plays
upon . . . the atmosphere of Psycho and its reception’.27 In the wake of
Psycho’s success Hitchcock was interviewed and profiled as never before,
but as Rebello notes ‘critical enshrinement for the movie and its director
still lay several years ahead’.28 This is to say that it was not until after the
re-evaluation of Hitchcock’s work by the Cahiers du cinéma critics, and
Andrew Sarris’s popularisation of the politique des auteurs (or theory of
authorship) that Hitchcock would become one of Hollywood’s most
influential and imitated directors.29 As Noël Carroll points out, the forging
of a canon of films and film makers by auteur critics enabled allusion to film
history, ‘especially as that history was crystallised and codified in the sixties
and seventies’, to become a major expressive device.30 The recognition of
Hitchcockian themes and motifs enabled a film maker like Martin Scorsese
to ‘recalculate’ the Hitchcock formula (at least) twice: ‘Taxi Driver (1976)
reformulates Psycho (while it simultaneously situates its narrative pattern
in The Searchers [John Ford, 1956])’, and Cape Fear (1992) directly remakes
63
the aforementioned 1962 Universal picture of the same name, but within
this is ‘embedded a kind of remake of three minor Hitchcock films from
the early fifties: Stage Fright (1950), I Confess (1953), and Strangers on a
Train (1951)’.31
While the canonisation of Psycho might account for the way in which the
former version of a film property can come to function as a kind of fixity
(a point of origin) against which its remake is evaluated, the suggestion that
Hitchcock continually remakes or recombines a limited number of personal themes and cinematic techniques equally suggests that ‘there can
never be a simple original uncomplicated by the structure of the remake’.32
More than this, John Frow argues that, at whatever level the intertext can
be posited (shot, sequence, entire film), every remake is simultaneously a
remaking of the conventions of the genre to which it belongs, and (for those
viewers unfamiliar with the presumed original) the genre may be the only
point of reference.33 Taking this approach, Carol Clover situates Psycho
within the broader context of film genre, describing it as the ‘immediate
ancestor’ to the cycle of slasher movies initiated by The Texas Chainsaw
Massacre (Tobe Hooper, 1974) and Halloween (John Carpenter, 1978), and
celebrated in the sequels and series that followed: notably, Halloween II–VI
(plus H20 and Halloween: Resurrection), A Nightmare on Elm Street I–V
(plus Freddy’s Dead: The Final Nightmare) and Friday the 13th, Parts
I–VIII (plus Jason Goes to Hell: The Final Friday). Psycho is taken as the
benchmark for surveying each of the component categories of the slasher
film genre: Norman Bates (Anthony Perkins) is the original killer, ‘the psychotic product of a sick family, but still recognisably human’; the Bates
mansion is the locale, ‘the terrible place [that] enfolds the history of a
mother and son locked in a sick attachment’; the carving knife is the killer’s
preferred weapon; Marion Crane (Janet Leigh) is the first victim, ‘the beautiful, sexually active woman’; and her sister, Lila (Vera Miles), is the
survivor, ‘the final girl’ or ‘the one who looks death in the face [but] survives
the murderer’s last stab’.34 As Clover points out, none of these generic
particulars is exclusive to Psycho, ‘but the unprecedented success [notoriety and canonisation] of Hitchcock’s particular formulation, above all the
sexualisation of both motive and action, prompted a flood of imitations
and variations’35:
The spiritual debt of all the post-1974 slasher films to Psycho is clear, and it
is a rare example that does not pay a visual tribute, however brief, to the
ancestor – if not in a shower stabbing, then in a purling drain or the shadow
of a knife-wielding hand.36
64
Psycho’s influence is nowhere clearer than in John Carpenter’s low-budget
stalker film, Halloween, which ‘returns to the visual dynamic of the famous
shower scene and extends it throughout the entirety of the new film’.37
Steve Neale sees Halloween as an exemplary instance of the process-like
nature of genre, arguing that the character of Michael brings together what
were formerly two mutually exclusive elements of horror: the supernaturally defined monster of (for instance) Dracula (Todd Browning, 1930)
and the psychologically defined evil of Psycho.38 More than this, Adam
Lowenstein suggests that the shift from the (more respectable) psychological suspense of Psycho to the tasteless graphic horror of Halloween (and
beyond) is anticipated by Hitchcock himself is his own Psycho revision,
Frenzy (1972). Lowenstein says ‘if Psycho represents a watershed in
Hitchcock’s project of manipulating the sensory responses of his audience,
then Frenzy represents a stunning revaluation [remaking] of that watershed’.39 But it was Halloween’s enormous commercial success – $47 million
on an estimated budget of $325,000 – that made it the (more) immediate
prototype for the slasher movies of the late 1970s and early 1980s. For
instance, Friday the 13th (Sean S. Cunningham, 1980) was described as a
‘bare-faced duplication of Halloween’, 40 and the sequel Friday the 13th,
part II (Steve Miner, 1981) was seen as ‘a virtual remake of the earlier
movie’.41 The legacy of Halloween and its cycle in turn continued into the
self-referential series of neo-slasher films of the 1990s, inaugurated by
Scream (Wes Craven, 1996) and culminating in the gross-out humour of
Scary Movie and Scary Movie 2 (Keenen Ivory Wayans, 2000 and 2001).
Halloween begins in a small Illinois town in 1963 where Judith Myers is
brutally murdered by her six-year-old brother, Michael. Fifteen years later
Michael escapes from the asylum in which he has been held since the
killing, and makes his way back to his hometown where, on All Hallow
E’en, he stalks a babysitter, Laurie Strode (Jamie Lee Curtis), and her
teenage friends, Annie and Lynda. Laurie is the only one to escape
Michael’s murderous knife attacks, and with the help of Dr Sam Loomis
(Donald Pleasence), the psychotic killer is stopped, at least for the
moment. Halloween repeats a number of the conventions or ‘rules’ of the
slasher genre pioneered by Psycho (and enumerated and parodied in
Scream), but at the same time Carpenter’s film transforms and expands the
formula, enlarging (in the character of Laurie) the role of the ‘final girl’.42
Although Halloween escaped what some critics saw as the ‘excesses’ of
Brian De Palma’s early homages to Hitchcock (discussed below), it
nonetheless acknowledged its debt to Psycho. It did this not only by way of
theme and technique, but (more directly) through the naming of the character of Dr Sam Loomis after Marion Crane’s lover, and by engaging in a
65
kind of ‘genetic intertextuality’43 through the casting of Jamie Lee Curtis,
daughter of Psycho star Janet Leigh, in the role of final girl, Laurie Strode.
The late 1970s interest in the slasher movie sub-genre, coupled with
the burgeoning home-video and cable TV markets of the early 1980s, saw
the character of Norman Bates revived for a number of Psycho sequels.
The first of these, Psycho II (Richard Franklin, 1983), was a low-budget,
joint venture between Universal Studios and a US cable television
company.44 Psycho II takes up the story of Norman Bates (played again
by Anthony Perkins) and tells of his return to the Bates Motel after
spending twenty-two years in a mental institution for the murder of
Marion Crane (and others). Norman secures a job at a local diner, but his
attempt to begin a new life is gradually undermined by Marion Crane’s
sister, Lila Loomis (Vera Miles), and her daughter, Mary Samuels (Meg
Tilly), who together conspire to drive Norman back to the institution by
masquerading as the deceased Mrs Bates. Back in the Bates mansion,
Norman’s behaviour becomes increasingly erratic and following several
grisly knife murders (subsequently blamed by police on Lila and Mary),
Norman is visited by the kindly Mrs Spool, who explains that she is his
real mother and the one actually responsible for the recent murders.
Norman kills her with a shovel and carries the body up to Mrs Bates’s
room while the ‘voice’ of mother gives Norman instructions on reopening the motel (thus anticipating a further sequel). The film ends with a
brooding (replicated) shot of the Psycho house and a scarecrow-like
Norman silhouetted against the night sky.
Psycho II elects to provide part of its back story by opening with a black
and white shot of the Bates Motel neon sign (showing a vacancy) followed
by a replaying of the Psycho shower sequence, almost in its entirety. The
prologue begins with Marion Crane entering the bathroom and moving
toward the shower, and details her violent murder, omitting just two shots –
the water running past her legs to the bath drain and the famous dissolve to
a close-up shot of her eye – cutting instead directly to a shot of Marion’s
dead face pressed against the tile floor. The first of the sequel’s titles appears
at the end of the shower sequence as Hitchcock’s camera begins its slow
movement from Marion’s body in the bathroom to the folded newspaper
with the stolen money on the night table and then out an open window to a
silhouetted view of the Psycho house and Norman’s distant shouts of
‘Mother! Oh God, Mother! Blood!’ There follows a cut to the main title –
Psycho II, in the same bold, shattered letters of the original – and then the
remainder of the credits are played out against a dark silhouette of the house
(the first of the recreated shots), the night sky gradually turning through
several colours to reveal a daylight view of the threatening mansion.
66
The sequel’s post-credit sequence takes up and develops the story of
Norman’s rehabilitation and release, but Psycho II also goes on to carefully
remake further aspects of Hitchcock’s Psycho through imitation and exact
pastiche. Not only is there a replaying of elements of the shower sequence
and its lead up – Mary is treated by Norman to a supper of sandwiches and
milk; Mary disrobes and showers as an eye watches through a hole drilled
in the wall – but there is also the repetition of such details and shots as the
silhouetted Psycho house, the overhead view of Norman carrying his invalid
mother to the cellar, even a suitcase tumbling backwards down the stairs in
imitation of Arbogast’s body.45
While the publicity campaign for Psycho II attempted to identify the
sequel as a ‘quality film’ (in the tradition of the Hitchcock thriller), upon
its release it was dismissed by critics for its escalating violence, for instance
Mrs Bates stabs Lila Loomis through the mouth and Norman draws his
own hand across the blade of a large knife.46 These aspects were seen to link
the film to the (then) recent excesses of the slasher cycle, which included
the heightening violence and multiple murders of such films as Prom Night
(Paul Lynch, 1980) and Motel Hell (Kevin Connor, 1980). More than this,
and despite its ending with a ‘paratextual’ dedication – ‘The producers
wish to acknowledge their debt to Sir Alfred Hitchcock’ – the sequel (like
Psycho 98 fifteen years later) was condemned for its exploitative imitation
of the master: ‘You don’t have to be a Hitchcock idolater to see [that] this
dumb, plodding pseudo-camp bore is a callous, commercial parasite’.47
Psycho II (and the Norman Bates ‘franchise’) nonetheless found enough of
an audience to justify further sequels, both featuring Perkins. Psycho III
(Anthony Perkins, 1986) picked up from the narrative twist that Mrs Bates
was Norman’s adoptive mother, and Psycho IV: The Beginning (Mick
Garris, 1990) functioned (through the use of numerous flashbacks) as a
kind of ‘prequel’ to the 1960 film. In addition to this, there was Bates Motel
(Richard Rothstein, 1987), an unsuccessful television feature and pilot for
a proposed tele-series, in which Norman hands over management of the
motel to a fellow mental hospital inmate (played by the wide-eyed
Bud Cort).
Like the Psycho sequels of the 1980s (each of which can be seen as a
colour update of Psycho 60) Van Sant’s 1990s replica remakes Hitchcock’s
Psycho. But at the same time, at a higher level of generality, each one of
these films repeats – replays and expands – the generic corpus of the slasher
film.48 Released alongside such films as Scream 2 (Wes Craven, 1997) and
Halloween H20 (Steve Miner, 1998), Psycho 98 might (as noted above) take
the genre as its only intertext. Indeed, some of the transformations that
Psycho 98 effects upon its precursor are best understood in relation to the
67
conventions of the contemporary slasher movie and its reformulation of
the Hitchcock thriller. Although Hitchcock’s forthright treatment of
Marion and Sam’s sexual encounter and the shocking violence of the
shower scene may have challenged (and contributed to the breakdown of)
Hollywood’s self-regulatory code of ethics, Hitchcock nonetheless had to
work within the guidelines of the Production Code administered by the
Motion Picture Association of America. For instance, Hitchcock had to
remove, from Joseph Stefano’s screenplay, a line of dialogue to be spoken
to Marion by Cassidy, the Texas oilman: ‘Bed? Only playground that beats
Las Vegas’.49 This was restored to Van Sant’s version, and a number of
other Psycho 98 modifications – nudity in the opening motel and central
showers scenes, Norman masturbating as he watches Marion undress –
would not have surprised a contemporary audience familiar with the
amount of nudity and number of sexual themes that attend the slasher film.
In a similar way, the role of the ‘final girl’, prefigured only rudimentarily
in Psycho’s Lila Crane, is reinterpreted in Julianne Moore’s performance
of Lila as the ‘spunky inquirer’,50 familiar to viewers of the genre from
Halloween’s Laurie Strode to Scream’s Sidney Prescott (Neve Campbell).
In the early 1970s (and into the following decade) Brian De Palma earned
himself a reputation as a film stylist in the tradition of Hitchcock by
embarking upon a cycle of films seen to be heavily indebted to the
Hitchcock thriller. Sisters (1972) was a ‘very Hitchcock thriller’ inspired by
both Rear Window and Psycho, and Obsession (1975) was described by De
Palma and co-writer Paul Schrader as ‘an homage to Vertigo’.51 The latter
film – Obsession – can be seen as a kind of generic Hitchcock, reconstructing not only the ‘mood and manner’ of Vertigo, but recreating, too, some
of Hitchcock’s most visible stylistic characteristics: ‘tight plot construction, extended doppelgänger effects, precise control of point-of-view’.52
Moreover, Hitchcock’s reputation by this time was such that De Palma’s
allusions were consistently commented upon in critical and promotional
materials attending the films. For instance, following the first reviews for
Obsession, advertisements included an endorsement from the New York
Daily News: ‘Like Hitchcock at the top of his form’.53 De Palma’s next film,
Carrie (1976), took this further, its distributors developing ‘a promotional
campaign for the film which presented [De Palma] as a “new master of suspense” – rivalling . . . Hitchcock’.54 Like Sisters and Obsession, Carrie liberally borrowed from ‘the old master’. In particular, the film’s opening was
a variation on Psycho’s shower sequence, with Carrie White (Sissy Spacek)
becoming hysterical when she discovers (in the high-school showers)
that she has bleeding from her menstrual cycle. Across three subsequent
68
films – Dressed to Kill (1980), Blow Out (1981) and Body Double (1984) –
De Palma would go on to elaborately rework Hitchcock’s famous shower
sequence.
Released just a few months after Hitchcock’s death in 1980, Dressed to
Kill polarised viewers and critics alike, and demonstrated the extreme critical reaction to De Palma’s ongoing revision of Hitchcock’s oeuvre.55
Dressed to Kill was De Palma’s most detailed invocation – a ‘virtual
remake’56 – of Psycho. Andrew Sarris described Dressed to Kill as ‘a shamefully straight steal from Psycho’ and noted several ‘Hitchcockian parallels
in the plot’, most notably the bloody slashing of the principal character,
Kate Miller (Angie Dickinson), just a third of the way into the film, but
also the nervously played meeting between Kate and Dr Robert Elliott
(Michael Caine) that has its equivalent in Psycho’s parlour room scene and
the psychiatrist’s final revelation that Elliott is a transsexual driven to
homicidal fury by any woman who arouses his masculine side.57 It is around
these borrowings that the battle lines over Dressed to Kill – whether De
Palma was ‘a consummate film maker or a rip-off artist’ – were drawn.58 On
one side, and in near identical terms to the kind of criticism levelled against
Psycho 98, Sarris (and others) condemned ‘De Palma’s shot-by-shot replicas for the cheap, skimpy imitations they [were]’.59 On the other side, rival
New York-based critics such as Jim Hoberman and Pauline Kael celebrated De Palma’s ability to ‘recalculate’60 the grammar of Hitchcock’s
work. Quoting the film maker, Hoberman noted: ‘De Palma reasonably
asserts that his work is “not a slavish imitation . . . [Hitchcock] pioneered
correct grammar. I use it because it’s the best there is” ’.61
The beginning of Dressed to Kill – Kate Miller in a languorous shower
masturbation fantasy that ends in a violent awakening – is not just an outrageous reworking of Psycho’s famous murder sequence, but also a reprise
of De Palma’s own earlier tribute to Hitchcock: Dressed to Kill’s ‘showerbath sequence, with its swooning soft-porn atmosphere and adolescently
over-active camera, actually starts out as a hommage to Carrie before it
becomes a cod [or empty] hommage to Psycho (with an attack that isn’t)’.62
De Palma reprises the shower sequence at the end of Dressed to Kill in the
nightmare Liz Blake (Nancy Allen) has of Elliott escaping from the mental
institution and slitting her throat in the shower. It can be argued that,
rather than slavishly imitating Psycho’s originary scene, this final sequence
(like the larger gesture of Psycho 98) contributes to an elaborate circuit of
cinematic repetitions in which ‘De Palma will become Hitchcock will
become De Palma, ad infinitum’.63 More than this, De Palma cannily
engages here not only with a sequence – the showerbath murder – that is
part of a collective tradition but with its pro-filmic event. That is, a ‘body
69
double’ was used for Angie Dickinson in some of the shower shots just as
Hitchcock had hired, for the nude filming of Psycho’s shower scene, Marli
Renfro, a professional dancer-model, to double for Janet Leigh.64
De Palma’s next film, Blow Out (1981), is widely recognised as a variation on (an unacknowledged remake of) both Blow Up (Michelangelo
Antonioni, 1966) and The Conversation (Francis Ford Coppola, 1974),
but in addition to this it replays – again – the Psycho shower sequence and
its pro-filmic event. Blow Out begins – Halloween-style – with a knifewielding murderer stalking young women through a dormitory to its
steamy shower room. As the stalker draws back the shower curtain and
raises his knife to strike, his victim lets out a pathetic scream. At this point,
the scene cuts to a shot of Jack Terry (John Travolta), a sound recordist,
watching a work-print of what is in fact a low-budget slasher movie titled
(in a further reference to Hitchcock) Co-Ed Frenzy. Jack’s endeavour to
replace some of the film’s sound effects – the scream, but also eerie,
ambient night sounds – leads him to a secluded spot where he witnesses an
‘accident’ in which a presidential candidate is drowned when his car
plunges from a bridge. (The plotting of this sequence remakes, too, the
Chappaquiddick incident of 1969 that effectively ended the presidential
prospects of Senator Edward Kennedy.) Jack rescues a female passenger,
Sally Badina (Nancy Allen), from the water but (at the very end of the film)
she is murdered while helping Jack attempt to unravel the conspiracy
surrounding the candidate’s death. In the film’s final sequence – and in an
ironic reprise of the beginning – Jack finds his ‘voice-double’ through the
dubbing of Sally’s dying screams onto the soundtrack of his tawdry
slasher movie.
De Palma’s 1984 film, Body Double, is not only an extended reworking
of the voice and body doubles of Blow Out and Dressed to Kill but arguably
De Palma’s ‘densest appropriation of Hitchcock’s cinematic vocabulary
and themes: voyeurism, pursuit, rescue, guilt, punishment, and the use of
multiple identities or disguises’.65 More particularly, De Palma repeats in
Body Double elements of the narrative invention of both Rear Window and
Vertigo. In the latter film – Vertigo – a wealthy industrialist, Gavin Elster
(Tom Helmore), hires a former police detective, John ‘Scottie’ Ferguson
(James Stewart), to watch his beautiful wife, Madeleine (Kim Novak),
because he believes she is suicidal. This triangular relationship of two men
focused on a single woman is replayed in Body Double, where Sam
Bouchard (Gregg Henry) points out to fellow actor, Jake Scully (Craig
Wasson), that a woman in a distant house does a nightly dance and masturbatory routine that insists on being watched. As Carol Squiers points
out, in both films the ‘watching’ is a deliberate set-up by the first man to
70
Body Double (Brian De Palma, 1984). Courtesy Columbia/The Kobal
Collection.
make the second a witness to murder in order to cover up his role as the
murderer. In both cases, the second man is stricken with a phobia that
limits his actions at crucial moments. In both cases, the second man discovers that the woman he watched (in the lead up to the murder) was a
stand in – a body double – for the murdered wife.66 More than this, in both
cases, the first man is a ‘body double’ for Hitchcock (and De Palma), the
71
man who directs the audience – for which the second man is the body
double – to watch the violence that the first has orchestrated and inflicted
upon the woman.
Commenting on Hitchcock’s films of the 1950s, Dave Kehr explains that
if cinema itself is the central metaphor that informs Vertigo, then ‘the
dream of Vertigo – the dream of . . . a beautiful illusion that gives way to
nothingness – is also the dream of the movies’.67 De Palma begins and ends
Body Double, but also Dressed to Kill and Blow Out, with just such an illusion: a dream, a film-within-a-film. At the end of Body Double, De Palma
returns to the horror movie set of the film’s opening: a bat descends upon
a bathroom where a young woman is showering and transforms itself into
a vampire played by the actor Jake Scully. Just as the vampire is about to
strike, the film’s director (Dennis Franz, a De Palma regular) appears in
the bathroom window, shouting for Jake to freeze. Jake holds a rigid pose
as the actress in his clutches is replaced with a body double. The filming
resumes and we see a montage: shots of Jake and the actress intercut with
body shots of Jake and the Body Double, Jake sinking his fangs into the
slender neck of the actress, blood streaming down the perfect breasts of the
Body Double. At this point, Body Double does not lead in any direct way
back to Psycho, but establishes instead the larger circuit of what Gilles
Deleuze describes as a ‘dream-image’,68 a transtextual relay in which
each image becomes legible only in relation to the seriality of cinematic
representation.
Gus Van Sant’s version of Psycho was released in December 1998 following an intense promotional campaign and reports that Van Sant had not
only followed the original film shot-for-shot, but adhered to Hitchcock’s
six-week shooting schedule and insistence that there be no advance press
screenings. The official website for the film announced that Van Sant’s
daring remake of ‘an intact [and] undeniable classic’ would be ‘part tribute
to Hitchcock, part new introduction for younger audiences, part bold
experiment’.69 Questioned as to why he had undertaken such a project, Van
Sant answered:
I felt that, sure, there were film students, cinephiles and people in the business who were familiar with Psycho but that there was also a whole generation of movie-goers who probably hadn’t seen it. I thought this was a way of
popularising a classic . . . It was like staging a contemporary production of a
classic play while remaining true to the original . . . There is an attitude that
cinema is a relatively new art and therefore there’s no reason to ‘restage’ a
film. But as cinema gets older there is also an audience that is increasingly unpracticed at watching old films, silent films, black and white films.
72
Psycho is perfect to refashion as a modern piece. Reflections are a major
theme in the original, with mirrors everywhere, characters who reflect each
other. This version holds up a mirror to the original film: it’s sort of its
schizophrenic twin.70
Critics were prompt to point out that Van Sant’s statements were disingenuous. Naremore objected, stating that ‘movies have as much in
common with novels as with theatre’, and added that Van Sant’s Psycho was
not simply a refilming of the original Joseph Stefano script, but ‘an elaborate quotation of things that were literally printed on another film’.71 And
Steven Schneider noted that the phrase ‘popularising a classic’ was inappropriate not only because Psycho was already ‘one of the most profitable
films of all time, and one that [had] haunted American culture’s collective
consciousness ever since its release’, but also because Universal had
actively worked against this, withdrawing the original from circulation in
the lead up to the release of the remake.72
As noted at the outset, the critical reception of Van Sant’s Psycho was
uniformly one of bemusement or hostility. Adrian Martin announced that
no matter what ‘clever justifications’ might be advanced for the remaking,
the ‘experiment’ was noteworthy only in so far as it proved ‘that you can
mechanically copy all the surface moves of a screen “classic” and yet drain
it of any meaning, tension, artistry and fun’.73 Jonathan Rosenbaum (similarly) stated that in theory ‘a nearly shot-by-shot, line-by-line remake of
any movie could produce something marvellous, fresh, and revelatory, at
least if an artist had a viable artistic program to go with it’, but that in practice Van Sant’s Psycho was ‘a piece of dead meat’.74 Perhaps the most withering comments came from William Rothman, who had devoted some
one-hundred pages of his auteurist study, Hitchcock – The Murderous Gaze,
to a close analysis of Psycho75:
Van Sant . . . deserves all the blame anyone might heap on him for making
his dreadful version of Psycho . . . In Hitchcock’s films the figure of the
author is an important – perhaps the most important – character . . . What
is missing . . . from every moment of Van Sant’s film . . . are those motifs or
signs or symbols . . . whose presence participates crucially in the films’
philosophical meditations [and which] taken together, simply signify that
these are Hitchcock films. They function as Hitchcock’s signatures, like his
name in the credits or his cameo walk-ons.76
Each of these critical reactions echoes the call for ‘lovers of film . . . lovers
of Hitchcock . . . lovers of the original Psycho’ to boycott what was seen to
amount to ‘the worst, most offensive idea in the history of film’.77 It seems
73
curious, though, that few of the commentaries at the time of the release of
Psycho 98 (Rosenbaum’s excepted) drew attention to the ways in which
Psycho 60 had already been variously ‘remade’. As outlined above, these
broader, intertextual relations range from the generic repetitions of
Halloween, Scream and (countless) other slasher movies to the careful acts
of homage evident in De Palma’s work of the 1980s – Body Double, Dressed
to Kill and Blow Out. More recently De Palma has returned to the style and
themes of these earlier films with another labyrinth thriller – at once a
tribute to film noir and to cinema but also another Hitchcock remaking – in
Femme Fatale (2002). The film begins with an elaborate, fifteen-minute
heist sequence (incorporating a homage to the Psycho shower sequence) in
which an icy blonde (Hitchcockian) heroine, Laure Ash (Rebecca RomijnStamos), is enlisted in the robbery of a $10 million piece of jewellery
during a premiere screening at the Cannes Film Festival Palais. Doublecrossing her accomplices, Laure absconds to Paris where she becomes a
brunette, assumes the identity of a woman (Lily) she closely resembles, and
escapes to a new life in America. It is not until ten minutes before the end
of Femme Fatale that one (fully) realises that all of what has gone before
(that is, all that comes after her assuming Lily’s identity) is Laure’s dream.
Upon waking, Laure elects for a ‘second chance’, steering events away
from the premonition of her (nightmarish) future toward a (Vertigo-like)
ending that reworks and reprises the dream vision. As Gavin Smith points
out, if there are two things one can be sure of in a De Palma film, these are
that ‘nothing is ever as it seems and someone is always watching’.78 With
Femme Fatale, De Palma devises another seductive deception, reworking
Hitchcock (and others), but also revisiting his own signature style (split
screen, gliding steadicam) and themes: pursuit and surveillance, mistaken
identities and doublings, and (like Hitchcock) an obsession of seeing all that
is forbidden.
In addition to these personal (signature) De Palma movies, other
‘limited’ remakings of Psycho can be found in such varied examples as: the
shower scene spoof in High Anxiety (Mel Brooks, 1977), the ‘murder’ of
the heroine in Sally Potter’s experimental film Thriller (1979), Maggie’s
Psycho-like mallet attack on Homer in the ‘Itchy & Scratchy & Marge’
episode of The Simpsons (season 2, 1990), Martin Arnold’s short Psycho
trailer for Viennale film festival (1997), and the masochistic parody of the
shower murder in the short film Psycho Too (Andrew Gluck Levy, 1999).
In addition to these, Psycho has been revisited in Hitchcock: The Final Cut
(2002), a video game featuring extracts from six Hitchcock films (Psycho,
Frenzy, Torn Curtain, Rope, Saboteur and Shadow of a Doubt), and – in
the most meticulous remaking prior to Psycho 98 – Richard Anobile’s
74
Femme Fatale (Brian De Palma, 2002). Courtesy Quinta Comm./
The Kobal Collection/Etienne George.
(pre-video age) reconstruction of Psycho: 1,300-plus frame enlargements
and every word of dialogue in book form.79 Van Sant’s version of Psycho
might well closely follow the form and narrative of Hitchcock’s film and
also (as mentioned above) repeat a number of its contexts: same soundstage, similar order of shooting, no advance screenings and so on. But each
of the aforementioned other revisions of Psycho suggests that the ‘original’
text is never fixed or singular and that Van Sant’s Psycho remake differs textually (from this larger circuit of remakings) not in kind but only in degree.
As stated in the introductory chapter, remaking might refer to any number
of industrial and cultural practices, and the remake can be seen as but a particular institutional form of the logic of repetition that is possible for all
films. Understood in this way, a broad conception of the remaking of Psycho
would acknowledge, too, any of the several re-releases of Psycho (from
1965 onward) and its subsequent licensing by MCA for network and syndicated television screenings, and (later) sale to video tape and disc, as
further revisions – or remakings – of the film.
While all of the above establishes a much broader set of relations
between Psycho 60 and Psycho 98 (than that accorded it by most of its
reviewers), there is another, perhaps more interesting, way to approach
the Van Sant version. Rather than suggest, as many of its detractors have,
that Psycho 98 follows Hitchcock’s film too closely – that it steers near to
75
plagiarism, adding nothing to the ‘original’ – it can be argued that Van
Sant’s Psycho is not close enough to the Hitchcock version. Such an evaluation is implicit in the Martin and Rosenbaum reviews cited above, and
is even more clearly expressed by Chicago Sun Times critic, Roger Ebert,
who states:
Curious, how similar the new version [of Psycho] is, and how different . . .
The movie is an invaluable experiment in the theory of cinema, because it
demonstrates that a shot-by-shot remake is pointless; genius apparently
resides between or beneath the shots.80
This suggestion – that an irreducible difference plays simultaneously
between the most mechanical of repetitions – is best demonstrated by two
earlier (and lesser known) remakes of Hitchcock’s work: Remake (Pierre
Huyghe, 1995) and 24 Hour Psycho (Douglas Gordon, 1993). The first of
these, Remake, is a shot-by-shot remake, a ‘home-made’ video reproduction – ‘complete and literal but nonchalant, with a few jumps and discrepancies owing to its [deliberate] amateurism’81 – of Hitchcock’s Rear
Window. As in the case of Van Sant’s Psycho, where the duration of the
actors’ performances were timed against those of a video monitor replay of
their predecessors’ movements, Huyghe instructed his non-professional
actors ‘to repeat, to be doubles, to reproduce [to create anew]’.82
The second work, 24 Hour Psycho, is a new version – an ‘exact’ remake –
of Psycho 60, but one that (as its title suggests) takes a full day to run its
course. More specifically, Gordon’s version is a video installation piece that
re-runs Psycho 60 at approximately two frames per second, just fast enough
for each image to be pulled forward into the next,83 placing it ‘somewhere
between the stillness of the photograph and the movement of the
cinema’.84 As Stéphane Aquin points out, ‘stripped of its soundtrack,
slowed down to the limit of tolerability, the film plays like a regression
through the history of cinema, back to that threshold where black and
white photography haltingly becomes a moving image’.85 Drawing upon
the formal precedents of the North American ‘structural’ film (notably
George Landow’s Film in which there appear sprocket holes, edge lettering, dirt
particles, etc., 1966; and Ken Jacobs’ Tom, Tom, the Piper’s Son, 1969), but
also the new technologies of viewing introduced by home video, Gordon’s
strategy is to demonstrate that each and every film is remade – that is, dispersed and transformed – in its every new context or configuration.
Accordingly, Gordon does not set out to imitate Psycho but to repeat it –
that is, to change nothing, but at the same time allow an absolute difference
to emerge. Understood in this way, Psycho 98 might be thought of not as a
76
perversion of an original identity, but as the production of a new event, one
that adds to (rather than corrupts) the seriality of the former version. If
Hitchcock’s work holds for its viewers some ongoing fascination then it is
perhaps because these viewers remake the work in its every reviewing, and
this re-viewing may be no more or less than the genre labelled ‘remake’.
Each of the above mentioned works – Remake, 24 Hour Psycho and
Psycho 98 – is a kind of homage to Hitchcock, ‘a recognition of the deep
structure of his accumulated works, which speaks across generations and
across artistic media’.86 As Paula Cohen notes, when critics (like
Naremore87) declare that a better solution to Van Sant’s remaking of
Psycho would have been to re-release a 35 mm print of that film, they fail
to realise that a re-viewing of Psycho 60 is itself ‘a form of homage rather
than a recreation of the original experience’: ‘Van Sant’s film [is] a mechanism for catalysing homage, as ingeniously designed to draw admiring
attention to the original as anything Hitchcock might have come up with
himself ’.88 More than this, Psycho 98 – indeed, all of the Psycho remakes –
are a reminder both of Hitchcock’s place as a major figure in theories of
film authorship and of his ongoing influence in and through (popular) film
and (high) art, and the exchange between the two. Finally, Hitchcock’s
example underscores the importance of an understanding of the authorproducer in accounts of remaking, drawing attention to the very nature of
cinema, to the nature of cinematic quotation and artistic production, and
to the fact that every film – every film viewing – can be understood as a
type of remaking.
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
‘Psycho: Saving a Classic’, accessed 12 February 1999.
Ibid.
See, for example, Harkness, ‘Psycho Path’.
‘Psycho: Saving a Classic’, accessed 12 February 1999.
Mazdon, Encore Hollywood, p. 151. See also Sutton, ‘Remaking the Remake’,
pp. 69–70.
Ibid.
See Condon and Sangster, The Complete Hitchcock.
Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 48.
Druxman, Make it Again, Sam, p. 20.
Tarantino, ‘ “How He Does It” ’, p. 25.
McDougal, ‘The Director Who Knew Too Much’, p. 52.
Ibid., p. 53.
Ibid., pp. 58–61.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 22.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
77
McDougal, ‘The Director Who Knew Too Much’, p. 52.
Ibid., pp. 57–8.
Mulvey, ‘Death Drives’, p. 233.
Naremore, ‘Remaking Psycho’, p. 5, emphasis added.
Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, p. 47.
Krohn, Hitchcock at Work, p. 224; and Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the
Making of Psycho, pp. 25–30.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 60.
Naremore, Filmguide to Psycho, p. 26.
See Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, pp. 152–6.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 60.
Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, p. 162.
Ibid., p. 172.
Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, p. 40.
Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, p. 169.
Ibid., pp. 168–74.
Carroll, ‘The Future of Allusion’, p. 52.
Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, p. 40.
Wills, ‘The French Remark’, p. 157.
Frow, ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’.
Clover, ‘Her Body, Himself ’, pp. 192–205.
Ibid., p. 192.
Ibid., p. 194.
Dika, Recycled Culture, p. 208.
Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 56.
Lowenstein, ‘The Master, The Maniac, and Frenzy’, p. 185.
Pulleine, ‘Rev. of Friday the 13th’, p. 132.
Pulleine, ‘Rev. of Friday the 13th, part 2’, p. 138.
Clover, ‘Her Body, Himself ’, p. 204.
Stam, Film Theory, p. 337, n. 2.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 172.
Milne, ‘Rev. of Psycho II’, pp. 245–6.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, pp. 174–5.
Jack Kroll (Newsweek), quoted in ibid., p. 175.
Neale, ‘Questions of Genre’, p. 56.
Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, p. 77.
Clover, ‘Her Body, Himself ’, p. 203.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, pp. 193–6.
Rosenbaum, ‘Rev. of Obsession’, p. 217.
Quoted in Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 196.
Ibid., p. 197.
Ibid., p. 201.
Combs, ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, p. 213.
Sarris, ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, pp. 42 and 44.
78
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
72.
73.
74.
75.
76.
77.
78.
79.
80.
81.
82.
83.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
Kapsis, Hitchcock, p. 201.
Sarris, quoted in ibid., p. 207.
Kolker, ‘Algebraic Figures’, pp. 34–51.
Hoberman, ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, p. 44. See also Kael, ‘Master Spy, Master
Seducer’, pp. 68–71.
Combs, ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, p. 213.
Ibid.
Rebello, Alfred Hitchcock and the Making of Psycho, p. 104.
Squiers, ‘Over Brian De Palma’s Dead Body Double’, p. 97.
Ibid.
Kehr, ‘Hitch’s Riddle’, p. 16.
Deleuze, Cinema 2, pp. 44–67.
‘Psycho, Official Universal Pictures website’.
Ibid.
Naremore, ‘Remaking Psycho’, p. 6.
Schneider, ‘A Tale of Two Psychos’.
Martin, ‘Norman’s not Stormin’’, p. 20.
Rosenbaum, ‘Hack Job’.
Rothman, Hitchcock, pp. 245–341.
Rothman, ‘Some Thoughts on Hitchcock’s Authorship’, pp. 29–33.
‘Psycho Boycott, The’.
Smith, ‘Dream Project’, p. 28.
Anobile, Alfred Hitchcock’s Psycho.
Ebert, ‘Rev. of Psycho’, emphasis added.
Royoux, ‘Remaking Cinema’, p. 22.
Ibid.
See Taubin, ‘Douglas Gordon’, p. 69.
Mulvey, ‘Death Drives’, p. 231.
Aquin, ‘Hitchcock and Contemporary Art’, p. 174.
Tarantino, ‘ “How He Does It” ’, p. 25.
Naremore, ‘Remaking Psycho’, p. 12.
Cohen, ‘The Artist Pays Homage’, p. 131.
Part II Remaking as Textual Category
CHAPTER 3
Texts
In a seminal essay on adaptation, Dudley Andrew argues that the defining
feature of film adaptation – ‘the matching of the cinematic sign system to
prior achievements in some other system’ – can be shown to be typical of
all representational film.1 This is to say that every film – indeed, every representation – can be regarded as an adaptation because no film ‘responds
immediately to reality itself ’ but rather adapts, or re-presents, some preexisting model.2 As Andrew points out, adaptation theory typically limits
representation, first by focusing on the transference of novels into film, and
then by targeting those cases in which the prior model is a highly regarded
literary classic or a widely read popular novel.3 More recently, some critics
have suggested that writing about adaptation should provide a more ‘flexible [and] animating discourse in film studies’.4 James Naremore notes that
while adaptation is mostly thought about in relation to canonical literature,
it might also accommodate adaptations of other textualised materials.5
A broader approach to adaptation could include, for example, films derived
from songs (The Indian Runner, Sean Penn, 1991), letters (The Last Time
I Committed Suicide, Stephen Kay, 1996), newspaper articles (Biker Boyz,
Reggie Rock Bythewood, 2003), comic books (Spiderman, Sam Raimi,
2002), computer games (Laura Croft: Tomb Raider, Simon West, 2001),
adventure rides (Pirates of the Caribbean: The Curse of the Black Pearl,
Gore Verbinski, 2003), television series (Charlie’s Angels, McG, 2000) and
films derived from other films – remakes. This chapter sketches a broad
approach to adaptation and/as remaking before attending to two extended
case studies – the remaking of Yojimbo and Planet of the Apes – and
concluding with some historical notes around the concept of remaking.
Robert Eberwein points to the affinity between the terms ‘adaptation’ and
‘remaking’ when he defines the latter as ‘a kind of reading or rereading of
the original [text]’.6 This definition seems equally applicable to both, but
82
what typically distinguishes the two concepts is the relation between the
new version (adaptation or remake) and the medium of the original artefact. A remake is generally considered a remake of another film, whereas
one of the principal arguments of adaptation theory is concerned with the
movement between different semiotic registers, most often between literature
and film.7 That is, adaptation does not simply involve a retelling (rereading) of a story but ‘entails a move from one [expressive] medium to another
and therefore the “adjustment” of the narrative to the [new] expressive
language’.8 This seems straightforward enough when dealing with the
matching of written and cinematic signs, but any easy demarcation
(between adaptation and remake) is complicated when sources derive from
other (visual) media, such as graphic novels, computer games, television
programmes and even serial, experimental and animated films (for
example, the Twelve Monkeys (Terry Gilliam, 1995) remake of La Jetée
(Chris Marker, 1962)). Even more problematic is the fact that many literary adaptations have themselves been previously adapted to film, as in the
case of the multiple versions of Little Women (1933, 1949, 1994) or The
Man in the Iron Mask (1929, 1939, 1998). As Lesley Stern points out, a
chain of remakings often makes the more recent film version ‘by default a
remake, and particularly in a case in which the source is not a classic [literary] text, the reference point will be the earlier film’.9
Stern’s comment indicates that a crucial issue when dealing with adaptations and remakes is the identification and status of the original text.
A second animating discourse of adaptation theory is typically concerned
with the degree to which the adaptation relates to the (literary or other)
original. Recently, critics have taken up a metaphor of translation to
describe the way in which accounts of adaptation (remaking) usually centre
on issues of fidelity and freedom. The former designates a strategy that
seeks to stay as close as possible to the text being translated in order to
facilitate a faithful adaptation. The latter departs from the original text,
investing in its fertility to inspire or stimulate a free adaptation.10 In either
case, the similarity to, or difference from, the text being translated ultimately serves to affirm the identity and integrity of the (presumed) original. More than this, a highly canonised text (film or novel) is not only
considered more worthy of translation, but generates more concern over
the accuracy of the translation.11 In an endeavour to shift the debate, Eric
Cazdyn follows Walter Benjamin to assert that the task of the translator is
not to transmit meaning, but rather to liberate a ‘pure language’, one ‘that is
imprisoned in the original as well as . . . in the language of the translation’.12 Cazdyn says that ‘this pure language is not the original in its pristine state that is then defiled by the translation’, but something larger that
83
can only be hinted at by the supplementary relationship of the original and
the translation.13 He thus proposes a third strategy of translation, one of
transformative adaptation, in which every film ‘as it adapts an original text,
inevitably transforms the original text itself ’.14
Robert Stam similarly takes up the concepts of translation and transformation to describe adaptation as ‘a principled effort of inter-semiotic [or
inter-textual] transposition, with the inevitable losses and gains typical of
any translation’.15 Adaptations need not be concerned with the faithful
rendering of some original text, but can now take ‘an activist stance toward
their source[s] . . . inserting them into a much broader intertextual dialogism’.16 More particularly, Stam draws upon Gérard Genette’s category of
hypertextuality to describe adaptation as a relationship between a given text
(a ‘hypertext’) and an anterior text (a ‘hypotext’) that the former transforms, inviting a double reading.17 Film adaptations – we could include
remakes – are understood as hypertexts (new films) derived from preexisting hypotexts (literary or other textualised sources) that have been
transformed through a particular series of operations, including ‘selection,
amplification, concretisation, actualisation, critique, extrapolation, analogisation, popularisation, and reculturalisation’.18 Furthermore, in the
case of subsequent adaptations of properties – re-adaptations and/or
remakes – new hypertexts do not necessarily refer back to original hypotexts, but rather encompass the entire chain of remakings that form a
‘larger, cumulative hypotext’.19 As in Cazdyn’s account of transformative
adaptation, every reorganisation – every remaking – not only transforms
the original but also its anterior adaptations: ‘each adaptation organises the
elements of the original literary text in a certain way in order to wrap it up
with meaning’ yet the transformative adaptation ‘implies that the original
is not only what it is, but also that it exceeds itself ’.20 Like adaptations,
then, film remakes ‘are caught up in the ongoing whirl of intertextual reference and transformation, of texts generating other texts in an endless
process of recycling, transformation, and transmutation, with no clear
point of origin’.21
The language of translation suggests that the film adaptation (film
remake) is not ‘a faded imitation of a superior, authentic original . . . [but]
a ‘ “citation” grafted into a new context and thereby inevitably refunctioned’ or ‘disseminated’. 22 While it might often be the case that ‘the critic
treats the original and its meaning . . . as a fixity, against which the remake
is measured and evaluated’,23 more interesting questions pertain to the
factors that enable the identification of the intertext and to the nature of
the transformations that are worked upon it. As Stam describes it, the
intertext or ‘source text forms a dense informational network . . . that the
84
adapting text [the remake] can then take up, amplify, ignore, subvert, or
transform’.24 These transformations are conducted within the limitations
of a specific historical situation, and the remake performs these transformations along multiple axes, ‘absorbing and altering the genres and intertexts available through the grids of ambient discourses and ideologies, and
as mediated by a series of filters: studio style, ideological fashion, political
constraints, auteurist predilections, charismatic stars, economic advantage
or disadvantage, and evolving technology’.25 In this way the translation –
adaptation or remake – is less interested in its fidelity to the original than
in the potential of the original to generate further, and sometimes unpredictable, cultural production. Moreover, in addition to tracking the
changes to particular films, a transformative approach to remaking would
take an interest in how the very concept of remaking has been transformed
over time.26
Textual descriptions of remaking, in particular taxonomies, seek to locate
remakes in the structural repetition of specific narrative features, drawing
an (implicit) distinction between what genre analysis describes as the film’s
semantic and syntactic elements.27 A semantic approach defines a film or
genre according to a list of common traits, character types, objects, locations and the like, that comprise the film’s iconography. A syntactic
approach takes an interest in the various relationships that are established
between these semantic elements, the way these are organised in a similar
manner to create a narrative structure. In taxonomies of remaking, close or
direct remakes (‘faithful adaptations’) are those that seek to reduce
difference between themselves and their originals by sharing both syntactic elements (plot structure, narrative units, character relationships, etc.)
and semantic elements (specific names, settings, time frames, etc.). For
example, Lloyd Michaels describes Nosferatu, the Vampyre (Werner
Herzog, 1979) as a ‘faithful’ remake of Nosferatu: A Symphony of Horror
(F. W. Murnau, 1922), claiming that it not only repeats the narrative syntax
of the original, but ‘closely’ follows the semantics of its ‘visual design’,
copying its costuming, make-up, performance style and locations.28 By
contrast, transformed or disguised remakes (‘free adaptations’) are those that
might only make minor alterations to key syntactic elements, but more
substantially transfigure the semantic elements, altering character names,
gender and/or race, cultural setting, temporal setting and even the genre
of the original. For instance, Stern says Clueless is ‘remarkably faithful’ in
its structural repetition of the syntactic elements of Emma, that is ‘plot and
the way it is articulated through the figuring of characters and the combinations they enter into’. But the remake is ‘inventively divergent in terms of
85
incidentals’ or the semantic aspects of title, character name, location, timeframe and genre.29 A third category, non-remakes, describes those films that
open up so substantial a difference – semantic and syntactic – between
themselves and their designated originals that they may have more in
common with the narrative attributes of a genre or production cycle than
with a particular precursor text, even though the remake may have a like title
and credit a common source. Recent examples might include films such as
Ocean’s Eleven (Steven Soderbergh, 2001) and The Italian Job (F. Gary
Gray, 2003) which function independently of their originals as generic
heist movies. Finally, one needs to acknowledge that the difference between
these categories is only ever one of degree (not kind) and that the three positions are best understood as points along a continuum with the close remake
(at one end) seeking to keep the semantic and syntactic plurality of an original in place through a process of ‘repetitional transferral’ and the nonremake (at the other end) adopting a tactic of ‘differential dispersal’.30
As in the case of genre, the most productive textual accounts of remaking locate the remake not simply in a similar (and/or divergent) semantics
or syntax, but in the ‘intersection of a common semantics and a common
syntax’.31 Additionally, some textual accounts of remaking attend to a commonality (or otherwise) of stylistic elements or the way a film’s use of cinematic devices can indicate a hypertextual relationship. In these cases, a
likeness at the level of the composition of the shot and editing relations can
communicate something of the tone, values and rhythm of a precursor
text. For instance, Brian De Palma’s interest in Hitchockian themes, in particular voyeurism, is inscribed in his reworkings of Psycho and Vertigo not
only at a semantic-syntactic level but in the ‘manner’ of point-of-view
structures. In another example, Shawn Levy says that Steven Soderbergh’s
2001 Ocean’s Eleven remake adopts little more than its title and (similarly)
high wattage talent – George Clooney, Julia Roberts, Brad Pitt, Matt
Damon, Andy Garcia – from the original (Lewis Milestone, 1960), which
starred Hollywood Rat-Pack members Frank Sinatra, Dean Martin, Peter
Lawford and Sammy Davis, Jr. But, he adds, ‘in being so true to the frivolous impetus of the first [film] the new Ocean’s Eleven is a faithful
remake’.32 In a different example, Jonathan Demme’s The Truth About
Charlie (2002) closely follows the structure of Charade (Stanley Donen,
1963), retaining all of its key narrative units – characters, events, motivations – but is consistently likened in terms of ‘style’ and ‘spirit’ to the
films of the French New Wave, especially those of François Truffaut.33
The central elements for a narrative analysis of genre – lexicon, syntax
and style – provide a key to understanding hypertextual relationships but,
as the textual similarities (semantic, syntactic, stylistic) between original
86
and remake become ‘weaker’, the more important it becomes to recognise
that the structures of remaking ‘are not in the text, but in a particular
reading of the text’.34 In other words, the audience is encouraged to recognise the original and its remake in a variety of textual and extra-textual
ways. Accordingly, taxonomies of remakes do not only attend to textual
structures and the relative fidelity (sameness) or freedom (difference) of
the remaking, but also to the identification of the original, and whether the
remake is credited/uncredited or acknowledged/unacknowledged. The
first is an industrial definition of remaking that relates to the economic value
of the remake and its legally sanctioned use (usually in the form of a screen
credit) of a particular textualised source (a commercial property). The
latter, a critical definition of remaking, attends to the cultural value of the
remake by drawing attention to its reproduction of an earlier source (an
intellectual property) through such reception practices as promotion and
reviewing. These extra-textual markers stabilise the point of origin, limiting the intertextual relay and securing the hypertextual relationship as
more than one of just general influence and convention.
These various textual (and other) relationships of adaptation and/as
remaking can be further developed and understood through extended case
studies. The first of these is the (historical) example of the remaking of
Akira Kurosawa’s Yojimbo (The Bodyguard, 1961), the second film produced by Kurosawa Productions, and one of the most internationally
popular films in the Kurosawa canon. The dust jacket of the recent
Criterion Collection DVD (1999) draws attention to the remaking of
Yojimbo, describing it as follows:
The incomparable Toshiro Mifune stars in Akira Kurosawa’s visually stunning and darkly comic Yojimbo (The Bodyguard). In order to rid a village of
corruption, masterless samurai Sanjuro turns a range war between two evil
clans to his own advantage. Remade both as A Fistful of Dollars and, more
recently, Last Man Standing, this exhilarating gangster-Western remains one
of the most influential and entertaining genre-twisters ever produced.35
The description at once characterises Yojimbo as a groundbreaking original
that has generated further cross-cultural production (Italian and American
remakes) and also as a hybrid chambara or Japanese swordplay film, a movie
that injected a new realism into a staid genre: ‘Kurosawa play[ed] with the
genre and the audience’s expectations, filling the film [Yojimbo] with tough
yakuza who are cowards and a ronin [masterless samurai] who is uncouth
and unkempt’.36 But Kurosawa effected the transformation by drawing
upon the conventions – the syntax – of two cornerstone American genres,
87
the Western and the gangster film: ‘If we adopt the language of horse
breeders to the genealogy of films, one might write Yojimbo, by Shane out
of Scarface’.37 Film maker John Sayles provides a similar description: ‘an
American-style individual – a guy named Sanjuro – enters [the town], and
[Yojimbo] turns into a Western fairly easily’. But, Sayles adds, Yojimbo is
also ‘somewhat based on Dashiell Hammett’s Red Harvest’, a novel which
tells a like story of a character (a private detective) who works for two
opposing factions: ‘all of a sudden there’s this guy who keeps a personal
code . . . but not necessarily a moral one’.38
Although not as critically acclaimed as some of Kurosawa’s earlier
work – for example, Rashomon (1950) and The Seven Samurai (1954) –
Yojimbo was a commercial success in domestic and overseas markets and
helped consolidate Kurosawa as an art-house auteur. Yojimbo earned
around $1 million in Japanese rentals and was such a big success in
American art-house theatres that it was made available to (‘remade’ for39)
a wider mainstream market in a newly dubbed English-language version
under the title, Yojimbo: The Bodyguard.40 Stuart Galbraith notes the
influence of Kurosawa’s transformed chambara, stating that it not only
spawned countless imitations in Japan but that ‘its basic story and antihero concepts [were] reworked in a myriad of genres and countries’.41 Best
known among these is A Fistful of Dollars (Per un pugno di dollari, 1964)
the film that effectively launched the careers of director Sergio Leone,
composer Ennio Morricone and actor Clint Eastwood. According to
Christopher Frayling, Leone saw Yojimbo late in 1963 and reasoned that
since ‘the original story of Yojimbo [came] from an American novel [Red
Harvest] . . . it would be wonderful to take it back to where it originally
came from’.42 Fellow director Sergio Corbucci says that ‘Leone spent
much time “slaving away at a moviola machine and copying Yojimbo,
changing only the setting and details of the dialogue” ’.43 Leone later
admitted to having made a copy of the translated dialogue of the film but
only ‘in order to be sure not to repeat a single word. All I retained was the
basic structure [syntax] of Kurosawa’s film’.44
As in the case of many transformed or disguised remakes, the similarities between the two films are most evident at the syntactic level, where
they repeat the archetypes (hero, villain, helper, etc.) and functions noted
by Vladimir Propp in his structural account of folktales.45 In Yojimbo/
A Fistful of Dollars, a loner (samurai; gunfighter) wanders into an isolated
town that has been ravaged by corruption and violence. The loner learns
from an innkeeper (Gonji; Silvanito) that the depressed conditions in the
town are due to the rivalry between two criminally-inclined, mercantile
families and their gangs (led by Ushitora and Seibei; Rojo and Baxter).
88
Seeing an opportunity to profit from the situation, the loner offers his paid
services first to one faction and then the next, playing one against the
other in the hope that they will both be destroyed. The situation is complicated by the arrival of a merciless villain (Unosuke; Ramone) who is
expert with a unique weapon (pistol; Winchester). The loner now sides
with the dominant gang (Ushitora and Unosuke; Rojo and Ramon) but
still manages to rescue a woman (Nui; Marisole) and her family that have
been terrorised by that gang. Learning of the loner’s double-cross, the
gang captures and savagely beats him, and turns its attention to destroying its rival clan (Seibei; Baxter). The loner escapes with the help of the
innkeeper, gradually recovers in an out-of-town refuge (temple; church),
and then returns to exterminate the remaining gang. Dispatching the
villain, the loner mutters a casual goodbye to the innkeeper and sets off for
destinations unknown.
In addition to these structural parallels, many of the ‘incidental details’
of Yojimbo remain intact in A Fistful of Dollars,46 but Leone ‘undressed’
the characters of Kurosawa’s film, turning them into cowboys, ‘to make
them cross the ocean and to return to their place of origin’.47 In doing so,
Leone drew inspiration from a host of American Westerns. For instance,
the iconography of George Stevens’s classic Shane (1952) – which tells the
story of a mysterious (Christ-like) figure who arrives from nowhere to help
a struggling family – was ‘particularly important’. But Leone also admitted to deriving ideas from such renowned Westerns as Rio Bravo (Howard
Hawks, 1959), The Man Who Shot Liberty Valence (John Ford, 1962) and
Warlock (Edward Dmytryk, 1959), the latter of which was a favourite of
Leone’s at the time.48 More than this, just as Kurosawa had reworked the
conventions of the chambara with a revolutionary approach to swordplay,
music and sound effects,49 Leone transformed the conditions of the
European Western, introducing a new kind of realism and ‘a hero who was
negative, dirty, who looked like a human being, and who was totally at
home with the violence which surrounded him’.50 In doing so, Leone also
introduced (what were later recognised as) hallmarks of his own directorial style: ‘pervasive death imagery; breathtaking, rule-breaking use of the
widescreen; a near-fetishist devotion to the close-up; . . . an unprecedented marriage of music and image; and, the relentless pace of mythic storytelling’.51 As Frayling concludes, ‘it is the flamboyance and the rhetoric’
of Leone’s remaking of Yojimbo ‘that support his argument that he was
“translating” into Italian, rather than executing “a carbon-copy of
Yojimbo” ’.52
According to Frayling, Leone undertook his cultural remaking of
Yojimbo with the express understanding that his Italian production
89
company would purchase the necessary permissions from Toho (Kurosawa’s distributor) to make it an authorised copy – a credited remake. But a
‘nerve-racking moment’ came three-quarters of the way through filming
when one of the film’s financiers advised that Leone, and everyone else
associated with the film, ‘should refrain under any circumstances from
mentioning the word Yojimbo’.53 For reasons that remain unclear, the
rights were never secured, and upon seeing the film Kurosawa wrote to
Leone saying: ‘I have just had the chance to see your film. It is a very fine
film, but it is my film. Since Japan is a signatory of the Berne Convention
on international copyright, you must pay me’.54 Toho and Kurosawa
Productions subsequently filed a complaint with the International
Federation of Film Producers to which Leone’s lawyers responded by
counter-claiming that Kurosawa had lifted the story, not from Yojimbo (or
even Red Harvest), but from Carlo Goldoni’s eighteenth-century play
Arlecchino servitore di due padrone (The Servant of Two Masters).55 The
defence provided by this claim enabled Leone’s lawyers to negotiate an
out-of-court settlement, granting Toho exclusive distribution rights for
the film in Japan, Taiwan and South Korea, plus 15 per cent of world-wide
box-office receipts.56
A Fistful of Dollars went on to become an ‘original’ in its own right, the
first of Leone’s ‘dollars-trilogy’ (which included For a Few Dollars More,
1965; and The Good, the Bad and the Ugly, 1966). However, possibly due to
the litigation, Yojimbo remained the principal point of reference, and in
1992 New Line Cinema began negotiating a credited remake of Yojimbo,
purchasing remake rights to the Kurosawa work.57 The film that resulted –
Walter Hill’s Last Man Standing (1996) – is first and foremost a Bruce
Willis vehicle, but it also takes Yojimbo (even more than A Fistful of
Dollars) back to its generic ‘origins’ bringing together the structure and the
syntax of both Western and gangster pictures. Last Man Standing follows
its precursors to tell the story of a loner, ‘John Smith’ (Bruce Willis), who
enters a Prohibition-era border town which is divided between the local
power of two gangs, one led by the Irishman Doyle, the other by the Italian
Strozzi. As in the earlier films, the loner strikes a friendship with the local
innkeeper, conspires to profit from the mutual destruction of the gangs,
rescues a kidnapped woman from one faction and finally shoots it out with
a formidable opponent (in this case, the villain Hickey, played by
Christopher Walken). Additionally, Hill’s film borrows some incidental
detail, transforming, for instance, the harbingers of dread from the
Kurosawa and Leone versions – a dog carrying a human hand down
the street, a corpse riding a horse out of town – into a dead horse lying in
the middle of a dusty Main Street.
90
Last Man Standing (Walter Hill, 1996). Courtesy New Line/
The Kobal Collection.
As Kim Newman points out, transposing the story that Kurosawa set in
post-feudal Japan and Leone in the old West to the Prohibition-era border
town of Jericho, West Texas, brings Last Man Standing close in time and
location to the Personville setting of Hammett’s Red Harvest. In fact,
Newman ‘wonders why [Hill] didn’t go the whole hog, buy the rights to
Red Harvest – unfilmed since a very loose 1930 adaptation, Roadhouse
Nights – and make a faithful film version of the original, rather than squirrel through a maze of intermediary mimicries’.58 Newman stresses fidelity
to a single (credited) source over the remakings of Yojimbo, A Fistful of
Dollars and Roadhouse Nights, but at the same time notes that Hill’s placement of ‘urban gangsters in a left-over Wild West setting’ makes Last Man
Standing ‘an ironic evocation of . . . American cinema’.59 In other words,
stylistically and thematically Last Man Standing sits comfortably alongside
Hill’s earlier translations and evocations of the iconography of Hollywood
genres.60 More than this, Newman points to Hill’s preference, not for original titles, but ‘pre-extant sources as outlines for his action films’. For
instance, The Driver (1978) pays homage to the films of Jean-Pierre
Melville, Streets of Fire (1984) is a Howard Hawks-type (rock and roll)
Western, and even Hill’s ‘straight’ Western pictures – The Long Riders
(1980), Geronimo: An American Legend (1993), Wild Bill (1995) – ‘return to
oft-told stories’.61
91
The above suggests that Last Man Standing can be called up as a credited,
transformed remake of Yojimbo, but it indicates, too, the complexity of
generic and cross-cultural remakings. While attention to the textual
(syntactic) structures of these three films – Yojimbo, A Fistful of Dollars and
Last Man Standing – reveals something of their likeness, an account of the
historical, cultural and authorial ‘filters’ through which they are transformed tells something too about the indigenisation of these models.62 That
is, while international product (story, genre) might provide Kurosawa or
Leone with an underlying form or narrative model, this is restructured in
terms of local content, flavour, accent and social text.63 More than this,
rather than resulting in pale imitations of their prototypes these remakings
can lead to new or revived indigenous forms (chambara, spaghetti Western)
which are in turn (re-)exported as new (and ‘original’) cultural models. This
transformative understanding of remaking is further evident in the next
example, the adaptation and remaking of Planet of the Apes.
In the 1990s Twentieth-Century Fox began looking at ways of reviving its
Planet of the Apes franchise. The property had been more or less dormant
since the 1970s when the studio had extended the initial Planet of the Apes
feature (Franklin J. Schaffner, 1967) through a number of sequels and television programmes. The first film in the series was derived from Pierre
Boulle’s 1963 novel La planète des singes, initially translated into English as
Monkey Planet and later (following the release of the feature film) republished as Planet of the Apes. Described as a combination of ‘speculative
science fiction [and] Swiftian social satire’,64 the novel begins with a couple
on a leisurely cruise upon an interstellar vessel discovering a message in a
bottle. The frame story makes way for the tale of twenty-sixth century
French astronaut (and narrator) Ulysse Mérou who, accompanied by
fellow explorers Professor Antelle and Arthur Levain, travel to the distant
solar system of Betelgeuse. Leaving their craft in orbit, the explorers land
a pod on an Earth-like planet they name Sonor. They discover that the
planet is inhabited by mute humans of low intelligence, and ruled by apes
in a society (slightly) less technologically developed than the one on Earth.
To their horror, they find that the apes harvest and conduct experiments
on the humans: Mérou is captured and held in a research laboratory,
Antelle is placed in a zoo where he loses his mind and Levain is killed in
the hunt. Gradually Mérou, and his adopted human mate Nova, attract
the attention of the kindly chimp researcher Dr Zira but only enrage the
narrow-minded orang-utan Zaius. Mérou finally persuades an astonished
Zira of his origins, learns the ape language and, following a presentation
to the simian scientific council, is set free. Meanwhile, Zira’s fiancé
92
Dr Cornelius discovers evidence in an archaeological dig that the planet
was ruled by humans before it was usurped by their ape servants. This discovery causes unrest and endangers Mérou’s safety. Zira and Cornelius
arrange for a satellite to return Mérou, his adopted mate Nova and their
child Sirius to the astronaut’s still orbiting vessel. Mérou returns to Earth
(several hundred years in Earth-time has lapsed since his departure) to find
it technologically unchanged but now apparently ruled by apes. The novel
concludes by returning to the frame story, where the couple – revealed to
be chimpanzees – dismiss the prospect of intelligent humans as pure
fantasy.
Adaptation rights for Planet of the Apes were purchased by producer
Arthur P. Jacobs, who assigned Rod Serling (and later Michael Wilson) the
task of writing a screenplay that brought together ‘Boulle’s literary
philosophising [and] more cinematic pulp-science fiction imagery’.65
Having secured the interest of actor Charlton Heston and director
Franklin Schaffner, Jacobs eventually struck a deal with TwentiethCentury Fox for a $5 million screen adaptation. The completed film –
coinciding not only with the release of 2001: A Space Odyssey (Stanley
Kubrick, 1968) and the Star Trek television series (NBC, 1966–69) but a
burgeoning public interest in space travel – proved a commercial success,
grossing around $25 million (and more upon subsequent reissue).66
Schaffner’s film, while retaining key plot elements and characters from the
Boulle novel, wrought a number of significant transformations, both narrative and thematic. A type of free adaptation, Planet of the Apes replaces
the explorers – Mérou, Antelle and Levain – with American astronauts
Taylor (Charlton Heston), Dodge and Landon who travel some two thousand years into the future and crash land on what they believe to be an alien
planet. As in the novel, they encounter a society (this one technologically
far more primitive than their own) ruled by talking apes. From this point,
Taylor’s adventure roughly parallels that of Mérou: he is captured along
with Nova, wins the confidence of Zira and Cornelius, incurs the anger of
the elder Zaius and becomes aware that a human civilisation preceded that
of the apes. The end, however, radically transforms all that has gone before.
Instead of returning to Earth, Taylor and Nova (without child) escape to
the desolate ‘forbidden zone’ where Taylor discovers evidence – in the
form of a time ravaged Statue of Liberty buried to its chest in sand – that
the ape society has evolved from an Earth devastated by a human propensity for war.
As Eric Greene points out in his extended analysis of the series, the
ending of Planet of the Apes is but one – albeit the most famous – element
in the series’ ongoing presentation of ‘apocalyptic images of cataclysmic
93
race wars, nuclear destruction, struggles for dominance, [and] ecological
and biological devastation’.67 Set among American social and political
events of the 1960s and 1970s (civil rights movement, Vietnam War
protests) Schaffner’s film, and the Planet of the Apes series on the whole,
can be read as ‘a liberal allegory of racial conflict’,68 but (as Greene hastens
to add) the political statements were not ‘platformed’, and were never
meant to overwhelm the commercial value of the film and its subsequent
franchise.69 Although the ending of Planet of the Apes seemed to leave little
room for a sequel, the film’s outstanding box-office returns prompted the
producers to commission ideas for follow-ups, including (abandoned)
treatments from Boulle and Serling.70 The sequel, Beneath the Planet of
the Apes (Ted Post, 1970), launched the franchise into the 1970s and was
followed by three further features: Escape from the Planet of the Apes
(1971), Conquest of the Planet of the Apes (1972), and Battle for the Planet
of the Apes (1973). By the mid-1970s, the Apes cycle had developed a core
following, and Paul Woods reports that ‘from mid-1974 to late 1975 the
market was flooded with Apes juvenilia and toys, including model kits and
. . . action figures’.71 With interest maintained by the release of all five
feature films to television, the cycle was revived first as a television series
(Planet of the Apes, 1974) and the following year as an animated series
(Return to the Planet of the Apes, 1975). Greene and Woods document the
exhaustive cultural production that maintained Planet of the Apes through
the 1980s and into the 1990s, generating interest in, and speculation about,
a remake. This included the reprint of Boulle’s novel, the rerun of the Apes
television series on the cable Sci-Fi channel, and the recycling of Apes
iconography by visual and performance artists.72 In its most popular reincarnation, Planet of the Apes was (closely) remade in an episode of The
Simpsons (‘A Fish called Selma’) as an all-singing, all-dancing Broadway
musical titled, ‘Stop the Planet of the Apes I want to get off!’
The marketing and merchandising potential of a revived Planet of the
Apes franchise saw Twentieth-Century Fox actively seeking to add a sixth
feature film to the series. After several abandoned attempts through the
1990s to develop a new Planet of the Apes film,73 Fox commissioned
William Broyles to produce a screenplay unconstrained by the conceits of
the previous drafts or earlier films in the series. Stating that Boulle’s novel
had been ‘pretty much exhausted by the first movie’, Broyles described his
script – originally called ‘The Visitor, episode one [of three] in the
Chronicles of Aschlar’ – as a ‘re-imagining’ of the original series: ‘it [is] a
new movie . . . It’s not a remake in any way, shape, or form. There are no
characters that it shares with the original movie. There’s no setting, and
there’s essentially no story’.74 Understood as a non-remake, the completed
94
film, Planet of the Apes (Tim Burton, 2001) tells the story of astronaut Leo
Davidson (Mark Wahlberg) who crash lands on a world in which talking
apes rule over an underclass of humans. Davidson’s struggle for survival –
assisted by Ari, daughter of an ape senator, and threatened by maniacal
chimpanzee General Thade – also becomes a battle to liberate the enslaved
human population. Drawing upon ancient and medieval history and
accounts of pre-mechanised warfare, Broyles imagined Davidson as a
Spartacus-type hero – in the original script, captured and placed in a gladiator camp – who ends up leading the oppressed humans in an epic battle
against their captors.75 Enough of this material survives in Burton’s completed film for at least one commentator to describe it as ‘a remake of
Ridley Scott’s Gladiator [2000], with monkey suits as well as centurion
armour’.76 More importantly, Broyles’s decision to assign a wide range of
behaviours to both humans and apes transforms the earnest attempts at
racial allegory of (especially) the latter films of the Apes series into a
concern for issues of ‘species guilt’. Andrew O’Hehir says the film ‘offers
up a jittery catalogue of millennial anxieties, from the hazards of genetic
engineering and the corrupting influence of technology to ecological catastrophe and weapons of mass destruction’.77 More than this, Burton
(backed with an estimated budget of $110 million) transformed the
B-movie aesthetic of the Planet of the Apes series into a B-movie blockbuster: ‘a wild concept coated in incongruous corporate gloss’.78 As
O’Hehir describes it, Burton’s Planet of the Apes, along with Shaft (John
Singleton, 2000) and Rollerball (John McTiernan, 2001), is part of a recent
cycle in which ‘a classic genre or exploitation film . . . is remade as a mass
entertainment, inflated with a pompous sense of its own significance and
loses the edge of anger or cynicism or paranoia that made it powerful in the
first place’.79 Michael Atkinson similarly writes: ‘the miracle of the Apes
films is that such complex textual issues dominate an otherwise preposterous manifestation of cheap trash culture’. This, he continues, is ‘the gutsy,
low-rent glory of authentic pulp. It’s not a quality that can be recaptured
in expensive remakes, no matter how strenuous the effort’.80
Despite its many differences, the reimagined Planet of the Apes still
owes much to the Schaffner film (its reputation and progeny) and to
Boulle’s La planète des singes. For instance, Smith and Matthews state that
‘the basic thrust of the plot, the arrival of a human space-traveller on a far
distant Ape planet is taken from Boulle, but filters it through the first film
adaptation’.81 O’Hehir concurs pointing out that the Burton film not only
‘rehashes’ the basic premise of the original film and novel, but ‘more generally [remembering that Boulle’s hero was named Ulysse] the standard
Odyssean saga of an adventurer far from home in a world turned upside
95
Planet of the Apes (Tim Burton, 2001). Courtesy 20th Century/
Zanuck Co./The Kobal Collection/Sam Emerson.
down’.82 Perhaps most telling, though, is the way the new version handles
the original film’s surprise ending in which Taylor realises in his discovery
of a bomb-blasted Statue of Liberty that the ape planet is actually a postapocalyptic Earth. The new film similarly concludes with a twist, but
rather than retrospectively codifying the alien world as Earth, Burton has
Davidson – like Ulysse Mérou – return (apparently) to Earth. In the novel,
Mérou lands back in Paris (the Eiffel Tower clearly visible) but to his
horror discovers that the welcoming party is led by a uniformed gorilla. No
direct explanation is offered but the assumption is that in the hundreds of
Earth years that have elapsed during Mérou’s travels at light speed,
the Earth has reached a similar stage in its evolutionary cycle as the apedominated Sonor. In the case of the Burton film, Davidson pilots his pod
through an electro-magnetic storm like the one that initially led him to the
planet of the apes. He crash lands in Washington, DC on the steps of the
Lincoln Memorial, only to find that the chiselled features of Abraham
Lincoln have been replaced by those of General Thade. He turns to find
that the emergency vehicles – police cars and fire trucks – that have scrambled to the crash-site are in fact driven by apes.
Reviews of Planet of the Apes consistently focused on the ending, variously describing it as ‘spectacularly befuddling’83 and a ‘spellbinding
96
example of sheer creative desperation’.84 Xan Brooks writes that the
‘crazed final coda . . . makes little in the way of logical sense, and clashes
conspicuously against the pedestrian narrative that precedes it’,85 and
Smith and Matthews claim that the ending so confused audiences that
some DVD editions were issued with a ‘cardboard erratum slip’ explaining the final plot point.86 As (dis)ingenuous as the Broyles/Burton ending
might be, these responses seem to miss the more obvious point: namely,
that the remake of Planet of the Apes has a twist ending because the original does. That is, the ‘monkey-puzzle of an ending’,87 might make little
narrative sense, but it makes perfect remake sense. The Planet of the Apes
series sketches a vast circuit of remakings – films, tele-series, comics, songs
and Broadway musicals – but the ending of the Burton film underlines the
cultural memory of the original ending and emphatically secures the
authority and influence of the cult original.
The above (textual) accounts of remaking describe some of the changes –
filters of transformation – effected on particular precursor texts, but the
concept of remaking and how it has been transformed in its different historical contexts also requires examination. There would appear to be three
principal moments in the transformation of the category of remaking, and
in the relationship between the remake and its original. These are:
1. the early cinema before the establishment of the Hollywood mode of
production (pre-1917);
2. the ‘classical’ Hollywood of the studio era (1917–60);
3. contemporary Hollywood cinema (post-1960).
Defined primarily in relation to a body of copyright law, the credited
remake develops from being a counterpart to the early film practice of
pirating (or ‘duping’) to become an economically driven staple of the
Hollywood mode of representation. In the industrial context of the studio
years, remakes typically follow a line of fidelity (sameness) in which the
original narrative is linearly traced by a film that reinvents the property
through revised genre conventions or different stars or new technologies.
Through the 1960s and 1970s, the ‘new American’ cinema (visual artists
such as Stan Brakhage, George Kuchar, Jack Smith), and the ‘new
Hollywood’ cinema (maverick film makers like Dennis Hopper, Monte
Hellman, Bob Rafelson) were searching for an alternative space free from
the rigid hierarchies of the industrial mode of representation. Underpinned by developments in auteur criticism, remakes of this period typically filter the original property through individual styles to emphasise
97
difference by focusing on particular sections or introducing new material.88
Cazdyn states that such transformations are ‘always conducted within the
limitations of a particular historical situation’, and that they are more
obvious ‘when discourses of “origins” are at their weakest’.89 These shifts
suggest a need to think the concept of remaking historically, an approach
evident in the following brief discussion of the copyright and narrative
practices of early cinema.
According to Thomas Elsaesser, the institutional development of early
film was distinguished by at least two periods: the ‘primitive’ period from
1896 to 1907; and the period up to 1917, during which time the devices of
the earlier period continued to exist alongside the newer strategies of the
‘classical continuity’ cinema.90 Elsaesser states that the two ‘most momentous’ events of cinema’s early history were:
1. the ‘Nickelodeon boom’, or the movement away from itinerant projection to the fixed siting of exhibition outlets;
2. the transition from single reel to multi-reel films, and the associated
‘change this brought in the structure of the industry, the textual organisation of the film, and the commodity form of the product’.91
Additionally, as the early emphasis of competition and struggle for industry control shifted from attempts to monopolise the production, sale
and/or leasing of exclusive or non-standardised equipment to the pursuit
of dominance and standardisation in the sphere of manufacturing
processes and film product, there was an associated tendency to regulate
access to the market by ‘controlling invention, and thereby prevent[ing]
other producers from copying either patents or products’.92 As Janet
Staiger notes, the struggle for industrial control in the period to 1917 was
not conducted so much through the manufacture of competitive products
as through structural and legal practices: the working out of alliances and
cross-licensing agreements (‘combination’) and the fighting of legal cases
involving patent and copyright infringement (‘litigation’).93 It is within this
context of litigation, and specifically in relation to the establishment of
proper procedures of film protection and copyright, that one can understand two early (and quite similar) types of ‘film piracy’ – duping and
remaking.94
André Gaudreault states that, while the practice of copyrighting motion
pictures in the United States began very early, the unprecedented nature of
the new phenomenon – ‘the “aggregation of photographs” that was the film
strip’ – put an existing body of copyright law under considerable strain.95
As most films made prior to 1900 consisted of single shots, the initial
98
response of companies and individuals was to register (at the Library of
Congress) film products for copyright as single photographs, even though
the composite nature of the film strip was recognised.96 Accordingly, and in
line with the aggressive commercial policies of the period, films of those
competitors – especially overseas production companies – which had not
taken the precaution of copyrighting their products were enthusiastically
pirated or duped – that is, new prints for sale and distribution were produced
from a duplicate negative which had been struck from a competitor’s positive projection print. Charles Musser points out that there was considerable
reduction in picture quality, but that the duper was able to provide audiences with ‘dramatic headliners’97 and enjoy the rewards of film sales
without paying either for high negative production costs or any royalties to
the original producer.98 Gaudreault gives the famous example of Georges
Méliès’ Voyage dans la lune (1902), duped and widely distributed in the US
without Méliès ever being able to collect proceeds.99 And Musser notes that
1903 catalogues of the Edison Manufacturing Company featured dupes of
foreign productions, including Méliès’ Joan of Arc, Robinson Crusoe and
Gulliver’s Travels, Pathé Frères’ Ali Baba and the Forty Thieves, and British
pictures from G. A. Smith, James Williamson and the Charles Urban
Trading Company.100
The clarification of copyright law through the resolution of a number of
vexatious court cases that had hindered the American film industry (especially in the period 1901–03), coupled with the establishment of European
producers as competitors in the US market, eventually had the effect of
curtailing the strategy of duping.101 This encouraged local film companies
to produce more ambitious work, often with American locations and
subject matter. For example, in spring 1903, Edison’s Kinetograph
Department embarked upon a large-scale production of Harriet Beecher
Stowe’s anti-slavery novel Uncle Tom’s Cabin. Musser says that without
the former profitable option of mechanically reproducing (or duping) the
film, the rival Lubin Company simply waited until the Edison picture
was released and made its own ‘meticulous imitation’ of its narrative
unfolding – a direct remake.102 While the remaking of a popular film was
not a new phenomenon – Lubin’s An Affair of Honor (1901) remade a
Biograph film of the same name,103 and Edison’s own Kinetograph
Department had intermittently pursued the practice with films such as
Black Diamond Express (1896), a remake of Biograph’s popular Empire
State Express104 – the more limited opportunities for duping a competitor’s
productions saw a decided increase in the number of film remakes. Driven
by the protection of investment and financial gain, the Edison Company in
turn pursued this ‘ethical equivalent’ to duping,105 remaking Biograph’s
99
two biggest hits of 1904: Personal, which Edison retitled How a French
Nobleman Got a Wife Through the New York Herald Personal Columns
(1904), and The Escaped Lunatic, which became Maniac Chase (1904).106
Within a few years, greater industry cooperation was facilitated by the
formation of the Motion Pictures Patents Company (MPPC, 1908). This
‘trust’ not only enabled its cartel – which included major American film
producers (Edison, Biograph, Armat, Vitagraph) and the American representatives of several European companies (Pathé, Méliès, Gaumont,
Eclipse) – to control access to raw film stock, levels of rental income and
routes of film distribution, but introduced a self-regulating policy, both
improving interiors of film theatres and imposing censorship upon film
content.107 Furthermore, the stable business climate and growth of the
exhibition sector encouraged the MPPC (and its distribution arm, the
General Film Company) to promote ‘the drive towards standardisation in
the industry, thereby not only cutting down on costly duplication in the
technological sphere, but greatly increasing and accelerating the circulation of the product film’.108 While not quite spanning a decade, the MPPC
(eventually brought down by an anti-trust suit, 1912–15) is credited for
both introducing to the film industry an organisation of pooling agreements and trusts which had distinguished American business since before
the turn of the century,109 and encouraging a dynamic of standardisation
that would characterise the emerging Hollywood studio system. Moreover,
while this emphasis upon uniformity and the promotion of standardisation
enabled companies to develop similar business methods, Staiger notes that
an economic imperative of competition compelled the emerging studios to
style their films so as to promote innovation or product differentiation.110
One of the principal mechanisms by which a standard for filmmaking
was reached in the industrial mode of representation that characterised the
Hollywood studio system was the employment of advertising discourse.111
Citing advertisements from Edison catalogues (for films such as Life of an
American Fireman, 1903, and Uncle Tom’s Cabin) and fan magazine
materials (which begin circulation around 1910), Staiger notes the
familiarity of appeals to what have become consistently promoted industry qualities: ‘novelty, specific popular genres, brand names, “realism”,
authenticity, spectacle, [and] stars’.112 Moreover, while these qualities both
‘reinforced standard requirements for a film by stressing a certain set of
characteristics in a certain way’ and ‘outlined the boundaries for variation’,
concurrent advertising appeals to principles of innovation and novelty
allowed companies to differentiate their product as a grounds for both
‘competition and repeated consumption’.113 This emphasis upon product
differentiation is consistent with the (above mentioned) abandonment of
100
strategies of ‘piracy’ in favour of investment in ‘more original’ productions. Nevertheless, the repetition of an innovation – the impulse to reduce
risks and maximise profit – leads to the establishment of cycles – a technique, a style, a series – within classical stylistic practice.114 Accordingly,
the early (pre-1907) practices of recycling did not disappear so much as go
underground, to re-emerge in the form of the regulated differences of early
genres (the chase film, the railroad genre, the crime film) and serials and
series such as Perils of Pauline (1914) and Bronco Billy (1907–16).
Moreover, as film copyright law became more precisely defined and as narratives became increasingly self-sufficient, remake piracy was displaced by
a classical Hollywood remake practice which legitimated or disguised repetition through careful strategies of (A- and B-level) production, promotion and distribution. For example, Warner Brothers’ boxing picture Kid
Galahad (Michael Curtiz, 1937) was remade with a circus background as
The Wagons Roll at Night (Ray Enright, 1941). But when remade again
(Warner’s back catalogue by this time leased to television networks) as the
Elvis Presley vehicle Kid Galahad (Phil Karlson, 1962), the 1937 version
was renamed The Battling Bellhop so that its television screenings would
not conflict with the Elvis remake.115
The shift to multi-reel films, and the associated development of classical continuity cinema (1908–17), also occasioned a change in the intertextual referentiality between the story film and its source text.116 Early
film practice had assumed either audience competency in the popular
stories and current events filmed, or supplemented such knowledge with
exhibitor’s provision of additional cues (a musical accompaniment, sound
effects, an oral commentary). As this gave way to longer self-contained
narratives and the development of continuity cinema, the focus for the
construction of a story shifted from intertextual knowledges to intratextual repetitions, such as Bellourian ‘alternation’,117 Bordwellian ‘functional redundancy’,118 and (in a more complex way) generic conventions
and star personae. Accordingly, the intertextual referentiality between a
film adaptation and its literary property (novel, play, poem) and a film
remake and its ‘original’ became increasingly extratextual – located in
reviews, advertising, fiction tie-ins and other promotional materials. The
situation changes again with the introduction of television and (later) new
information storage technologies (VCR, laser disc, DVD), and an associated rise in film literacy through the abundance of television screens,
publications and other visual media. This not only leads to renewed
concerns over ‘duping’ in the form of video and Internet piracy, but also
to a ‘postmodern’ situation in which extratextuality is complemented by
a knowing type of intertextuality that becomes (in remakes like Planet of
101
the Apes) ‘a deliberate, built-in feature of the aesthetic effect’.119 Finally
this is supported by a contemporary situation in which more information
circulates in advance of film screenings than ever before (see Chapter 5).
These ongoing shifts suggest that – like adaptation theory – textual
accounts of remaking need to be placed in a contextual history, in ‘a sociology [of remaking] that takes into account the commercial apparatus, the
audience, and the . . . [broader] culture industry’.120
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
Andrew, ‘Adaptation’, p. 28.
Ibid., p. 29.
Ibid.
Naremore, ‘Introduction’, p. 9.
Ibid., p. 1; see also Corrigan, ‘Which Shakespeare to Love?’, p. 160.
Eberwein, ‘Remakes and Cultural Studies’, p. 15.
See Andrew, ‘Adaptation’, pp. 32–4; and Ray, ‘Film and Literature’,
pp. 121–3.
Somigli, ‘The Superhero with a Thousand Faces’, p. 284.
Stern, ‘Emma in Los Angeles’, p. 226.
Cazdyn, The Flash of Capital, p. 95.
Grindstaff, ‘A Pygmalion Tale Retold’, p. 140.
Cazdyn, The Flash of Capital, p. 95, emphasis added.
Ibid.
Ibid., p. 117.
Stam, ‘Beyond Fidelity’, p. 62.
Ibid., p. 64.
Ibid., p. 66.
Ibid., p. 68.
Ibid., p. 66.
Cazdyn, The Flash of Capital, p. 117.
Stam, ‘Beyond Fidelity’, p. 66.
Ray, ‘Film and Literature’, p. 127.
Eberwein, ‘Remakes and Cultural Studies’, p. 15.
Stam, ‘Beyond Fidelity’, p. 68.
Ibid., pp. 68–9.
Cazdyn, The Flash of Capital, p. 89.
Altman, ‘A Semantic/Syntactic Approach to Film Genre’, pp. 26–40.
See also Gabbard, ‘The Ethnic Oedipus’, pp. 95–114.
Michaels, ‘Nosferatu’, p. 240.
Stern, ‘Emma in Los Angeles’, p. 226.
McHoul and O’Regan, ‘Towards a Paralogics of Textual Technologies’, p. 21.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 90.
102
32.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
Levy, ‘Nice’n’Easy’, p. 14.
Harris, ‘Rev. of The Truth About Charlie’, p. 61.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 91.
http://www.criterionco.com/asp/.
Galbraith, The Emperor and the Wolf, p. 302.
Sesonske, ‘Yojimbo’.
Sayles, ‘Walking Alone’, p. 22.
The metaphor of translation (described earlier) is again apposite for it underlines the ways in which multi-language versions (common in the early 1930s)
and dubbed (and subtitled) versions of films constitute another type of
remaking.
Galbraith, The Emperor and the Wolf, pp. 309–10.
Ibid., p. 302, emphasis added.
Frayling, Sergio Leone, p. 119.
Ibid., pp. 124–5.
Quoted in ibid., p. 125.
Propp, Morphology of the Folktale.
See Cumbow, Once Upon a Time, pp. 3–4.
Frayling, Sergio Leone, p. 125.
Ibid., p. 127.
Galbraith, The Emperor and the Wolf, p. 302.
Frayling, Sergio Leone, p. 126.
Cumbow, Once Upon a Time, p. 2.
Frayling, Sergio Leone, pp. 129–30.
Ibid., p. 147.
Quoted in ibid., p. 148.
Ibid.
Ibid., p. 149.
Galbraith, The Emperor and the Wolf, p. 311.
Newman, ‘Rev. of Last Man Standing’, p. 53.
Ibid.
Carroll, ‘The Future of Allusion’, p. 55.
Newman, ‘Rev. of Last Man Standing’, p. 53.
O’Regan, ‘Negotiating Cultural Transfers’, p. 214.
Ibid., p. 218.
Greene, Planet of the Apes as American Myth, p. 2.
Woods, ‘Origins of the Species’, p. 20.
See Phillips and Garcia, ‘The Original Series’; and Winogura, ‘Dialogues on
Apes, Apes, and More Apes’.
Greene, Planet of the Apes as American Myth, p. 7.
Ibid., p. 1.
Ibid., p. 30.
Russo and Landsman, ‘Planet of the Apes Revisited’, p. 43.
Woods, ‘The Planet Goes Ape’, p. 123.
103
72. Greene, Planet of the Apes as American Myth, pp. 146–87; and Woods,
‘The Planet Goes Ape’, pp. 123–36.
73. Plesset, ‘Unfilmed Scripts’, pp. 26–7.
74. Broyles, ‘Time and Destiny’, pp. 40 and 42.
75. Ibid., p. 42.
76. O’Hehir, ‘Gorilla Warfare’, p. 13.
77. Ibid.
78. Brooks, ‘Rev. of Planet of the Apes’, p. 56.
79. O’Hehir, ‘Gorilla Warfare’, p. 13.
80. Atkinson, ‘Son of Apes’, p. 66.
81. Smith and Matthews, Tim Burton, p. 229.
82. O’Hehir, ‘Gorilla Warfare’, p. 13.
83. Paatsch, ‘A-Grade Apes’, p. 38.
84. Schembri, ‘Embrace the Big, Bad, Dopey Ape’, p. 9.
85. Brooks, ‘Rev. of Planet of the Apes’, p. 56.
86. Smith and Matthews, Tim Burton, p. 245.
87. Brooks, ‘Rev. of Planet of the Apes’, p. 56.
88. Cazdyn, The Flash of Capital, p. 91.
89. Ibid., pp. 118 and 124.
90. Elsaesser, ‘The Institution Cinema’, p. 154.
91. Ibid., pp. 154–5.
92. Ibid., p. 157.
93. Staiger, ‘Combination and Litigation’, p. 47.
94. For a more detailed discussion of the dupe in early cinema see Forrest,
‘The “Personal” Touch’, pp. 89–126.
95. Gaudreault, ‘The Infringement of Copyright Laws and Its Effects’, p. 3.
96. Ibid., p. 4.
97. Musser, Before the Nickelodeon, p. 274.
98. Ibid., p. 495, n. 44. See also Gaudreault, ‘The Infringement of Copyright
Laws and Its Effects’, pp. 2–5.
99. Gaudreault, ‘The Infringement of Copyright Laws and Its Effects’, p. 5.
100. Musser, Before the Nickelodeon, p. 238.
101. Ibid., pp. 277–8.
102. Ibid., p. 245.
103. Musser, The Emergence of Cinema, p. 329.
104. Ibid., p. 164.
105. Ibid., p. 389.
106. Musser, Before the Nickelodeon, pp. 280–1. See also Forrest, ‘The “Personal”
Touch’, pp. 89–126.
107. Staiger, ‘Combination and Litigation’, p. 47.
108. Elsaesser, ‘The Institution Cinema’, p. 158.
109. Gunning, ‘Weaving a Narrative’, p. 13.
110. Staiger, ‘The Hollywood Mode of Production’, p. 97. See also Staiger,
‘Mass-produced Photoplays’, p. 102.
104
111.
112.
113.
114.
115.
116.
117.
118.
119.
120.
Staiger, ‘The Hollywood Mode of Production’, pp. 97–102.
Ibid., pp. 98–101.
Ibid., pp. 101 and 109.
Ibid., pp. 110–11. See also Balio, Grand Design, pp. 101–3.
Sennett, Warner Brothers Presents, p. 234.
Musser, Before the Nickelodeon, p. 340. See also Staiger, ‘Rethinking
“Primitive” Cinema’, pp. 101–23.
Bellour, The Analysis of Film, especially pp. 262–77.
Bordwell, Narration in the Fiction Film, pp. 156–66.
Jameson, ‘Postmodernism, or The Cultural Logic of Late Capitalism’, p. 67.
Naremore, ‘Introduction’, p. 10.
CHAPTER 4
Genres
In More Than Night, James Naremore describes the category of film noir
not as a set of narrative or stylistic features, but as a discursive formation:
‘film noir belongs to the history of ideas as much as to the history of
cinema . . . It has less to do with a group of artefacts than with a discourse’.1 In the first instance, American film noir is a critical genre,
‘a belated reading of classic Hollywood that was popularised by cinéastes
of the French New Wave, [and later] appropriated by reviewers, academics, and film makers, and then recycled on television’.2 Naremore
describes a first, ‘historical’ age of film noir, enabled by the postwar arrival
of Hollywood film into Paris, and a French predisposition to view the film
noir as an ‘existential allegory of the white male condition’.3 In the late
1950s, French auteur film makers such as Jean-Luc Godard and François
Truffaut took film noir as a pretext for reinventing cinema as a mode of
self-expression. In the United States, the expansion of film noir was
assisted by factors such as the importation of the French politique des
auteurs, the upsurge of repertory theatre short seasons, the contribution
of broadcast television to film literacy and the expansion of film courses
in American universities. Along with shifts in Hollywood production
methods and commercial infrastructure, these factors led to a delayed
new wave of American film makers whose early films were influenced by
the nouvelle vague and were ‘somewhat noirish in tone’.4 By the late
1960s, the critical appraisal of noir had motivated something of a revival,
but film noir did not become an industrial genre until revisionist and neoexpressionist productions – such as Chinatown (Roman Polanski, 1974)
and Taxi Driver (Martin Scorsese, 1974) – helped generate a cycle of noir
remakings. ‘At this point’, Naremore concludes, ‘[film] noir had fully
entered the English language, and it formed a rich discursive category
that the entertainment industry could expand and adapt [remake] in
countless ways’.5
106
Like the category of film noir, the concept of remaking is never simply
a quality of texts, but is the secondary result of broader discursive activity.
As described in the introductory chapter, film remaking is both enabled
and limited by a series of historically specific institutional factors, such as
copyright law and authorship, reviewing and media literacy, which are
essential to the existence and maintenance – to the discursivisation – of the
film remake. In the 1970s, the critical interest in film noir and the increasing development of a noir canon led to a number of direct remakes of classic
noirs. Murder, My Sweet (Edward Dmytryk, 1944) was remade as Farewell,
My Lovely (Dick Richards, 1975), They Live by Night (Nicholas Ray, 1948)
as Thieves Like Us (Robert Altman, 1974), and The Big Sleep (Howard
Hawks, 1946) was remade under the same title (Michael Winner, 1978).
The cycle continued into the 1980s, with classic noirs like Double Indemnity
(Billy Wilder, 1944), The Postman Always Rings Twice (Tay Garnett, 1946),
Out of the Past (Jacques Tourneur, 1947), The Big Clock (John Farrow,
1948), and D.O.A. (Rudolph Maté, 1949) all providing material for
remakes. More noir followed in the 1990s (and beyond), with Gun Crazy
(Joseph H. Lewis, 1950) remade as Guncrazy (Tamra Davis, 1992), Criss
Cross (Robert Siodmak, 1949) as The Underneath (Steven Soderbergh,
1995), and Kiss of Death (Henry Hathaway, 1947) and Night and the City
(Jules Dassin, 1950) were remade with the same titles (Barbet Schroeder,
1995; Irwin Winkler, 1992). This chapter does not seek to provide an
exhaustive overview of these (and other) remakings,6 but mainly takes an
interest in a cycle of noir remakes of the 1980s, namely: Body Heat
(Lawrence Kasdan, 1981), The Postman Always Rings Twice (Bob Rafelson,
1981), Against All Odds (Taylor Hackford, 1984), No Way Out (Roger
Donaldson, 1987) and D.O.A. (Rocky Morton and Annabel Jankel, 1988).
In particular, this chapter looks at the role these remakes play in the
commercial development of neo-noir, situated as they are between the
revisionist (modern) noirs of the 1970s and the more formulaic (postmodern) neo-noirs of the 1990s.7 Additionally, it is argued that these noir
remakes depend not only on the repetition of existing textual structures
but also upon audience knowledge of previous texts (the noir canon) and
an understanding of the broader generic structure of film noir.
Two noir remakes from the 1980s – The Postman Always Rings Twice and
Body Heat – provide an understanding of the critical discourses and industrial contexts attending neo-noir. Both appear at the beginning of the
1980s, but where The Postman Always Rings Twice looks back to the
thematic and stylistic revisionism of 1970s noirs Body Heat looks ahead to
the more formulaic and commodified noir of the mid-1980s and beyond.
107
Generally speaking, The Postman Always Rings Twice can be related to the
revival and transformation of noir in films such as Chinatown (1974),
Roman Polanski’s revisionist private-eye movie; The Long Goodbye (1973),
Robert Altman’s adaptation of the 1954 Raymond Chandler novel; and
Thieves Like Us (1974), Altman’s period remake of the classic They Live by
Night (1948). More particularly, The Postman is a direct and acknowledged
remake of the 1946 MGM production of The Postman Always Rings Twice,
directed by Tay Garnett. Thomas Leitch describes The Postman as a ‘true
remake’ in so far as it establishes a relationship between itself, the earlier
film it remakes and the ‘property’ – James M. Cain’s 1934 novel – upon
which both films are based.8 This triangular notion of remaking operates
by ‘ascribing value’ to Cain’s original literary text and then ‘protecting’ that
value by invoking Garnett’s 1946 adaptation as a failed attempt to realise
the essential characteristics (or intrinsic value) of the original property.9
Leitch argues that the rhetorical strategy of Rafelson’s Postman depends
on a distinction between ‘positive and negative textual markers’:
richness, originality, and the imperial power of the classic on the one hand,
and artifice, datedness, and repression of important material on the other . . .
In this way the [Postman] remake is able to valorise Cain’s original text,
toward which it adopts an attitude of hushed reverence, while ascribing any
dated qualities in need of revision to [the earlier MGM] version.10
The original property, James M. Cain’s The Postman Always Rings Twice,
has been described as a ‘quintessentially American’ novel.11 Along with
(then) contemporary authors, such as Dashiell Hammett, W. R. Burnett,
Horace McCoy, Cornell Woolrich and Raymond Chandler, Cain belonged
to a school of American writers of ‘tough guy’ or ‘hard-boiled’ mysteries
and crime novels of the 1930s and 1940s.12 Writing about Cain and his
fellow ‘poets of tabloid murder’, critic Edmund Wilson described Cain as
a novelist intent upon making explicit all the things that had been excluded
from classic Hollywood by the Catholic Legion of Decency: ‘sex, debauchery, unpunished crime, [and] sacrilege against the Church’.13 Between
1934 and 1976 Cain wrote some eighteen novels and although several of
these were adapted to film, Cain’s work is best remembered as the source
for a cycle of 1940s film noirs: Double Indemnity (Billy Wilder, 1944),
Mildred Pierce (Michael Curtiz, 1945) and The Postman Always Rings Twice
(1946). Although the last to be adapted in this cycle, The Postman was
Cain’s first novel, an immediate best-seller and an explicitly erotic work
that was banned in some parts of the United States. In Europe, the novel
quickly became the source of (at least) two continental versions: Le Dernier
Tournant (The Last Turning, Pierre Chenal, 1939) and Ossessione (Luchino
108
Visconti, 1942).14 However, in Hollywood, the novel’s explicitly erotic
content saw a decade-long delay in its filming. When it finally appeared in
1946, the limitations imposed by the Production Code of the 1940s,
together with the glossy production values that prevailed at MGM and the
star presence of Lana Turner in the lead role of Cora, all contributed to a
‘whitewashed’ adaptation of the novel.15 Richard Schickel provides a consensus view when he describes the MGM adaptation of The Postman as a
‘rather cold, sanitised (and miscast) version’, and a film that ‘never did get
the knack of noir’.16
Tay Garnett’s version of The Postman closely follows the narrative
invention of Cain’s novel to tell the story of drifter Frank Chambers (John
Garfield) who stops at a roadside café, accepting the elderly owner Nick
Smith’s (Cecil Kellaway’s) offer of a job upon catching a glimpse of the
latter’s young wife, Cora. Frank and Cora soon begin a torrid affair and
resolve to run away, but Cora is drawn back by the financial security of
marriage and the business. As their frustration mounts, the couple decide
to kill Nick, but their attempt at murder is thwarted by an electrical
accident that merely results in an injury to Nick. Frank leaves the café, but
is inevitably drawn back and, when Nick announces that he is considering
selling the business, the couple make a second attempt on his life, this time
bludgeoning Nick and staging a car accident to cover the crime. Nick is
killed, and Frank inadvertently injured, in the accident, but District
Attorney Sackett, convinced of Frank and Cora’s guilt, manages to extract
a complaint from Frank against Cora. This evidence, due to the efforts of
Cora’s defence council Keats, turns out to be inadmissible, and Cora is
released on a suspended sentence. She turns her attention to using Nick’s
insurance money to upgrade the café and, although resentful of Frank’s
action, marries him in order to silence local gossip. Eventually, having
weathered a blackmail attempt and Frank’s brief affair with Madge, Frank
and Cora (now pregnant) are reconciled. Just as they are looking forward
to a new life, Cora is killed in a car accident and Frank, falsely convicted of
her murder, is sentenced to death.
Despite the similarities, the 1946 version of The Postman did effect a
number of transformations on Cain’s adulterous murder story, expunging
not only the novel’s scandalous depiction of aggressive sexuality but also its
ethnicity (the Greek husband, Nick Papadakis, became Nick Smith; the
Jewish lawyer Katz was renamed Keats). At the same time, the film
remained in a number of (narrative and thematic) ways surprisingly close to
the detail of Cain’s novel. In addition to the narrative plotting described
above, it retained, for instance, The Postman’s sense of foreboding by
translating Frank’s first-person delivery into a characteristically noir
109
voice-over narration. For example, the first sentence of the novel – ‘They
threw me off the hay truck about noon’17 – was transformed into Frank’s
opening voice-over: ‘It was on a side road outside of Los Angeles. I was
hitchhiking from San Francisco down to San Diego, I guess. A half-hour
earlier I thumbed a ride’. In the novel, this mood of predetermination is
further communicated through several doublings, and reinforced more
generally by Cain’s oft-quoted statement of a desire to repeat across a body
of work some ‘[terrifying] wish that comes true’.18 These repetitions find
perfect expression in the rhyming effects that characterise and contribute to
the classical narrative style of the Hollywood studio film. At the global level
(of action and event) the textual repetitions of Garnett’s Postman include:
two accidents with a lorry; two attempts (the latter successful) to kill Nick;
two attempts to leave the café; and the two trials for murder. At the local
level (of dialogue and motif) the doublings cover: the two notes in the cash
register; the echoes at the lake; the name of the roadside diner (‘Twin
Oaks’); and, most eloquently, the lipstick roll (described below) that
announces Cora’s arrival in and departure from Frank’s life. In a final repetition, Garnett (and screenwriters Harry Ruskin and Niven Busch) made
the decision to have Frank spell out the metaphor of ‘the postman’ (which
only features in the title of Cain’s novel) to the sympathetic Sackett in the
death cell. Each of these repetitions communicates the mood of noirish
foreboding and fatality conveyed by Cain’s novel: ‘So I’m in the death house
now, writing the last of this’.19
The place of Cain’s Postman and (to a lesser extent) Garnett’s film
version in the literary and film canon ensured that Rafelson’s remake was
discussed and evaluated in relation to both texts. The 1981 release of The
Postman prompted a reprint of Cain’s novel, and pre-publicity for the film
focused on its being a ‘corrective’ to MGM’s watered-down 1946 adaptation, a film described by one critic as ‘less noir than purplish melodrama’.20 Rafelson insisted that ‘they [MGM] never made the [Cain]
book . . . The book was really a neglected minor classic’.21 Rafelson’s claim
to some greater fidelity centred in particular upon the 1981 Postman’s
ability (in a post-Production Code Hollywood) to depict the notorious sex
scenes of Cain’s novel. A representative passage reads as follows:
Except for the shape, she [Cora] wasn’t any raving beauty, but she had a
sulky look to her, and her lips stuck out in a way that made me want to mash
them in for her . . . I took her in my arms and mashed my mouth up against
hers . . . I bit her. I sunk my teeth into her lips so deep I could feel the blood
spurt into my mouth. It was running down her neck when I carried her
upstairs.22
110
The 1946 version developed a strategy of (Freudian and institutional)
censorship to deal with the problem of Cora’s ‘dangerous sexuality’. In the
latter part of the film’s opening segment, Nick leaves Frank alone in the
diner where Cora announces her presence by (deliberately) dropping her
lipstick to the floor. An eye-line match traces the lipstick roll, first to a
shot of Cora’s bare legs, and then to a long shot of her standing in the
doorway, immaculately dressed in brilliant white shorts, halter top and
turban. The lipstick – seen here to function as ‘a fetish which brings
together Cora’s feminine mystique [her allure and potency] and Frank’s
fatal obsession’23 – is returned to in the scene of Cora’s death. At the end
of the film, the car carrying Frank and Cora crashes through a guard-rail
and Frank is thrown clear of the wreck. Turning back to attend to Cora,
Frank’s eye-line motivates a point-of-view close-up shot of Cora’s hand
holding the lipstick that she has been applying just before the crash. The
camera cuts back to a medium close-up of the incredulous Frank before
returning, in response to his exclamation of ‘Cora’, to a shot of the
lipstick falling from her hand. In this final scene, as in Cora’s initial
appearance, the lipstick (in some sense) is Cora.
The Postman remake abandons the device of lipstick fetish and develops
instead (from the novel) the feline metaphor of sexuality that begins with
descriptions of Cora as ‘cougar’ and ‘hell cat’24 and persists throughout the
story. This is present in a limited way in the 1946 version, but the
Production Code – which expressly forbade the use of the term ‘alley cat’
(applied to a woman)25 – would have curtailed its being drawn out in any
detail. In Rafelson’s film the metaphor is taken up in a variety of ways:
through the narrative element of the domestic cat that thwarts the first
murder attempt, the naming of the lawyer ‘Katz’, the wild-cat trainer
Madge (Anjelica Huston) and (in another repetition) the ‘return’ of the
house cat through Madge’s gift of the puma: ‘And the cat came back! It
stepped on the fuse box and got killed, but here it [was] back’.26 More
obviously, the pre-release publicity for Rafelson’s version focused on two
scenes of ‘orgasmic . . . sex and violence’27 omitted from the earlier film
version: the violent coupling of Frank (Jack Nicholson) and Cora (Jessica
Lange) in the kitchen and their mutual arousal while messing each other
up at the scene of Nick’s accident-murder.28 These scenes were expected
to bring to Rafelson’s film an authenticity and attitude from the novel that
oscillated between religious rapture – ‘I kissed her. Her eyes were shining
up at me like two blue stars. It was like being in church’ – and sadistic
contempt – ‘I was alone with her for a minute, and swung my fist up against
her leg so hard it nearly knocked her over’.29 The promise that The Postman
remake would deliver on those elements left out of the 1946 version was
111
The Postman Always Rings Twice (Bob Rafelson, 1981). Courtesy
Paramount/The Kobal Collection.
further reinforced by a report in Variety that Rafelson was going to shoot
the film, on a closed set, as an X-certificate (the equivalent of NC-17) and
then cut it to an R-rating for its theatrical showing.30
Upon The Postman’s release, David Thomson stated that the
‘restored’ scenes were ‘among the least hindered views of sex the cinema
[had] ever provided’,31 but critics such as Pauline Kael complained that
the ‘detached, meditative tone’ of Rafelson’s film was at odds with the
112
‘sleazy primitivism’ of Cain’s writing.32 The perceived failure of
Rafelson to bring to his adaptation the carnality and impulsiveness of
Cain’s novel appears to relate to a second (conflicting) claim to authenticity, namely the 1981 Postman’s careful reconstruction of the novel’s
setting in Depression-era southern California. Rafelson said that he
‘thought it was owed to Cain for somebody to make it [The Postman] in
the period he wrote it. I felt the story itself was part of the Depression’.33
Rafelson went to the trouble of having the Twin Oaks setting built from
scratch, choosing for the house a type of California architecture that was
popular around 1915, specifically in order to avoid the Art Deco style
featured in 1970s recreations of the 1930s. In maintaining that he ‘didn’t
want everyone to be in awe of the period’,34 Rafelson attempted to distance The Postman from what was perceived as the comfortable nostalgia
of a recent cycle of neo-noirs such as Chinatown (1974), Thieves Like Us
(1974) and Farewell, My Lovely (1975). These were films that seemed to
satisfy the auteur predilections of their (nouvelle vague inspired)
directors and at the same time meet the financial interests of corporate
Hollywood, films that ‘both determined and reproduced the period’s
simultaneous impulses toward irony and nostalgia’.35 In an endeavour to
avoid the self-knowing memorialisation of the classic film noir, but at the
same time meticulously recreate the story’s period setting, Rafelson’s
earnest treatment of The Postman failed to capture the novel’s tough-guy
manner. As Kael put it: ‘The words that would describe this movie
[detached, meditative, studied] are at the opposite pole from how anyone
would describe the book’.36
Rafelson’s ‘hushed reverence’ toward Cain’s story not only respects the
latter’s claim to being ‘the granddaddy of hot tabloid novels’,37 but
retrospectively (and somewhat unexpectedly) affirms the place of
Garnett’s version as a classic in the noir canon. More than this, Rafelson’s
Postman enters into the broader critical discourse of classic film noir (and
its 1970s remakings). For instance, Thomson aligns it with the l’amour fou
of Nicolas Ray’s They Live By Night,38 and Richard Combs suggests that
Rafelson may have taken the opening of The Postman from Edgar
G. Ulmer’s Detour (1945), ‘the poor man’s (or more downbeat, or simply
more hysterical) Postman’.39 More importantly, the 1981 Postman can be
related to Richard Martin’s suggestion that ‘film noir in the hands of the
post-classical Hollywood film makers became both an object of generic
revisionism and a tool for [the] . . . political investigation of American
society’.40 Noël Carroll argues that Hollywood genre films in the 1970s
(and beyond) are marked by two tendencies, one founded on dissonance
(difference) and the other on harmony (sameness). In the first case, a film
113
maker reworks an established genre in order to generate expression through
the challenging of the conventions and values associated with that genre.
In the second, a film maker memorialises a past genre, lovingly recreating
it through imitation and careful reconstruction.41 Although there are substantial stylistic differences between them, films such as The Long Goodbye
and Chinatown (and the two British remakes of classic noirs, Farewell, My
Lovely and The Big Sleep), developed their ‘ironic tone through [a]
systematic contrast with the moral universe of 1940s private-eye films’.42
In Carroll’s account of Hollywood allusionism, this ironic and/or
nostalgic reworking of genre was the legacy of American auteurism and the
‘unprecedented awareness’ of film history that developed among film
makers and audiences in the 1960s and 1970s.43 The Postman doesn’t
approach the level of stylistic dissonance evident in Altman’s The Long
Goodbye, but it does extend the moral convictions and thematic preoccupations of Rafelson as (producer-director) auteur of the New Hollywood.
Rafelson is best known for his work on low-budget BBS Productions (the
company he formed in the 1970s with Bert Schneider and Steve Blauner)
such as Five Easy Pieces (1970), The King of Marvin Gardens (1972) and
Stay Hungry (1976). All three starred Jack Nicholson and Rafelson developed the idea of remaking The Postman after being dismissed as director of
the Fox production, Brubaker (completed by Stuart Rosenberg, 1980).
Given the opportunity to work again for a smaller production company
(Lorimar) and with long time collaborator Nicholson, Rafelson’s version
of The Postman is seen as an extension of the fatalism running through his
earlier work.44 Rafelson takes the rough-house style of Cain’s novella,
‘retain[s] the plot but revise[s] the rhythm . . . producing one of the
formally most audacious of American mainstream movies [of the 1980s]’.45
In this auteurist interpretation, The Postman Always Rings Twice is read –
alongside Rafelson’s earlier allegories of America – as a mix of ‘carnality
and capitalism’: ‘The precariousness of Frank and Cora’s alliance becomes
the heart of the film, and a shadowy metaphor for the pursuit of happiness
and the American Dream, like the partnerships of love and profit in [The
King of] Marvin Gardens and Stay Hungry’.46
The Postman’s contemporaneous noir, Lawrence Kasdan’s Body Heat
(1981), deals with the same themes – sex and money (‘carnality and
capitalism’) – but reinvents the classic noir visual style for the 1980s. Body
Heat is widely recognised as a remake of Double Indemnity, Billy Wilder’s
1944 adaptation (co-written with Raymond Chandler) of James M. Cain’s
1943 novel. Leitch categorises Body Heat, alongside The Postman, as a
‘true remake’ – a film that establishes a triangular relationship between
114
itself, Wilder’s film and Cain’s novel – even though it does not credit the
book as its source. Body Heat can be described as a disguised or unacknowledged remake, a film that repeats fundamental narrative units from the
Cain novel (and Wilder adaptation) but alters the details of its title, setting,
period, character names and the like. In the absence of a screen credit
acknowledging the original property, the remake becomes a theoretical
construct or function of the film’s production and reception. Important
here is Cain’s reputation, and the early 1980s revival of interest in Cain’s
work,47 but more significant is Double Indemnity’s privileged place in the
noir canon. For instance, Naremore writes: ‘few would deny that Double
Indemnity is a definitive film noir and one of the most influential movies
in Hollywood history . . . [It] was an unorthodox film, challenging nearly
a decade of Production Code resistance to . . . Cain’s fiction’.48 Frank
Krutnik similarly declares that Double Indemnity was ‘historically significant in the development of the 1940s erotic crime thriller, establishing
through its rendering of the Cain tale a model for the narrative . . . structures of subsequent [film noirs]’.49 Recently, Brian De Palma (whose
homages to Alfred Hitchcock are discussed in Chapter 2) has paid tribute
to film noir, by opening Femme Fatale (2002) with the title character, Laure
Ash (Rebecca Romijn-Stamos), reflected in a hotel room television screen
as she watches the Barbara Stanwyck archetype in Double Indemnity.
These accounts of Double Indemnity’s reputation and place in film history
help explain why critics such as Leitch directly compare Body Heat to
Wilder’s adaptation, but fail to note that Double Indemnity had already
been more directly remade as a lesser-known movie for television, directed
by Jack Smight in 1973.
Double Indemnity begins with Walter Neff (Fred MacMurray), bleeding
from a bullet wound, staggering into his office in the Pacific Insurance
Building. Neff speaks into his dictaphone and his story of ‘an unholy love
and an almost perfect crime’ unfolds in flashback. Neff is an insurance
salesman who becomes involved with the beautiful and dangerous Phyllis
Dietrichson (Barbara Stanwyck). Phyllis convinces Walter not only to help
her take out a $100,000 life insurance policy on her husband, but also to help
her murder him. Together they stage Dietrichson’s accidental death in
order to qualify for the ‘double indemnity’, but things go wrong when
Neff’s boss, Barton Keyes (Edward G. Robinson), begins to suspect murder.
Neff strikes up a friendship with Phyllis’s step-daughter Lola, who believes
that Phyllis has taken up with her (Lola’s) former boyfriend Nino Zachetti.
Thinking he has been double-crossed, Neff hatches a plan to kill Phyllis and
frame Zachetti. In a confrontation in the darkened, Dietrichson living
room, Walter kills Phyllis, but not before she fatally wounds him. At the
115
Body Heat (Lawrence Kasdan, 1981). Courtesy Ladd Company/Warner
Bros/The Kobal Collection.
end, the story returns to the present where the dying Walter is comforted
by the fatherly Keyes. Body Heat takes up this narrative framework and
reworks it into the story of Ned Racine (William Hurt), a naive and
corruptible Florida lawyer who is seduced by Matty (Kathleen Turner),
wife of ruthless businessman Edmund Walker (Richard Crenna), whom
they subsequently decide to kill by staging an ‘accidental’ fire. Murder is
116
suspected, and Ned is warned by his friend and fellow attorney Peter
Lowenstein (Ted Danson) to stay away from Matty. Ned subsequently
discovers that Matty has used him in order to manipulate Walker’s will so
that she is sole beneficiary. Now prepared to kill Matty, Ned arranges to
meet her, but she is apparently killed in an explosion at her boathouse and
Ned is arrested for the Walker murder. Imprisoned, Ned realises that Matty
has in fact switched identities with a former high-school friend and has
escaped with the insurance money to some foreign island.
Although Wilder’s Double Indemnity is often taken as the ‘original’
against which Kasdan’s noir remake is evaluated, Body Heat can more
broadly be seen as a remaking of Cain’s oeuvre (or at least those works by
which he is best remembered). Schickel goes so far as to argue that Double
Indemnity was a case of auto-citation, ‘created by [Cain] in full knowledge
that he was doing his own homage to [The] Postman’:
Both tell essentially the same story: an all too compliant male is enthralled
by a strong and scheming woman. With her motivating it and with him
taking care of details, the adulterous couple execute a perfect murder of the
woman’s husband. Then, when they are virtually in the clear, fate (or irony)
swipes them with its big blundering paw and they receive their just desserts –
but for the wrong reasons.50
Such a connection enables one to recognise (in Body Heat) noir elements –
such as the hard-boiled dialogue and depiction of naked (and graphic)
animal lust – that are common to both The Postman and Double Indemnity.
For instance, Body Heat is remembered for dialogue such as Ned’s ‘You
shouldn’t wear that body’, and Matty’s ‘You’re not too smart, are you? I like
that in a man’. However, at an even higher level of generality, it can be argued
that Body Heat simultaneously refers to and remakes the noir genre to which
its intertexts belong. David Chute understands this when he states that Body
Heat refers to ‘just about every major film and novel in the hard-boiled and
film noir genres’.51 Chute acknowledges that the ‘archetypal “love kills”
story line and the characters’ doomed intensity’ is borrowed from Cain, but
he also finds in Body Heat elements of Chandler’s novella Red Wind, Howard
Hawks’s The Big Sleep (1946) and Robert Aldrich’s Kiss Me Deadly (1955).52
Body Heat director Lawrence Kasdan similarly cites various sources of
inspiration: ‘Double Indemnity yes, The Postman not so much. Cain’s writing
was important . . . [but so too were] movies like Out of the Past and Murder,
My Sweet. Also The Killing [Stanley Kubrick, 1956]’.53
While critical accounts of Rafelson’s acknowledged remake of The
Postman were often limited to a discussion of its (greater or lesser) fidelity
to the spirit of Cain’s novel, Body Heat’s disguised remaking of Cain
117
and/or Wilder enabled it to be related to a broader category of noir
fiction and film. While this led a critic like Kael to dismiss Body Heat as
‘a catalogue of noir clichés’,54 others saw it as ‘a self-consciously knowing
update of an archetypal film noir plot . . . with every element cranked up
to overdrive and overkill’.55 These opinions suggest that Body Heat (like
The Postman) might be related to the revisionist and nostalgic tendencies
of neo-noirs from the 1970s. Steve Jenkins, for instance, makes a connection between it and Chinatown, drawing out an analogous Oedipal pattern
that sees the father figures of Edmund Walker and Noah Cross (John
Huston) as an ‘embodiment of material power and corruption’.56 Martin
takes this further, locating the theme of patriarchal immorality in the socioeconomic context of 1980s America, specifically in ‘the promotion of
individualism, selfishness, and greed [that was] underpinned by Reaganomics’.57 In the case of a film like Body Heat, this ‘greed, both economic
and sexual, . . . results in an extended personal nightmare from which
there is . . . no escape [no way out]’.58 This is furthered through the character of Matty who, like her husband (Walker), will do ‘whatever’s necessary’, realising her (murderous) scheme through the entrapment of Ned
Racine. While Body Heat does not offer up the same damning critique of
capitalism as Polanski’s Chinatown, the figure of the politically corrupt and
morally reprehensible patriarch launches itself forward into mid-1980s
noir remakes such as Against All Odds and No Way Out, while the murderous (spider) woman is taken up in such films as Rafelson’s Black Widow
(1987) and The Last Seduction (John Dahl, 1994).
A further connection between Chinatown and Body Heat can be found in
the suggestion that the latter’s anachronistic dialogue and ambiguous costumes and setting make it (metonymically) a nostalgia film. Fredric Jameson
states that ‘everything in [Body Heat] conspires to blur [its] immediate contemporary reference and to make it possible to receive this . . . as nostalgia
work – as a narrative set in some indefinable nostalgic past’.59 One could
argue, though, that Body Heat does not recreate a (pseudo) period setting
but rather reinvents the film noir, plundering a critical genre to promulgate
a stylised, industrial cycle of neo-noir. In this respect the immediate precursor to Body Heat is not Chinatown or The Postman Always Rings Twice,
but Martin Scorsese’s Taxi Driver (1974). Naremore argues that ‘Taxi
Driver is memorable not only for its [dense and mysterious] blacks but also
for its neon, steam, and smoke’.60 Augmented by lurid colour (and enabled
by developments in high-speed colour negative film stock61), the blacks of
Taxi Driver become a ‘mannerism in all types of post-1970s noir’.62 A film
like Body Heat extends this approach, employing desaturated visuals
‘to heighten the atmosphere of sex and violence, but also to evoke the
118
monochromatic tradition of high-contrast, black-and-white thrillers’.63
Body Heat is a film that combines dark (and shadow) and heat (and colour)
to contribute to the sleek commodification of a highly stylised late-1980s
(and 1990s) ‘noir look’.
At the beginning of the 1980s, Body Heat re-presented film noir to an
increasingly knowing and cine-literate audience, and set the agenda for
later 1980s remakes of classic noirs. Chute described Body Heat as ‘one of
the most accomplished American movies in years, and perhaps the most
stunning debut movie ever’.64 Unlike The Postman, which arrived with
exemplary credentials – Rafelson (director), Nicholson (actor), David
Mamet (writer), Sven Nykvist (cinematographer) – Body Heat was a first
feature for its writer-director Kasdan and a defining film for actors William
Hurt, Kathleen Turner and Mickey Rourke. More importantly, Body Heat
anticipated the high-tech visual style and production design of the
so-called ‘high concept’ film of the 1980s.65 At the level of composition,
Body Heat adapted the visual style of classic noir to compose its high contrast and sometimes minimal colour scheme. At the level of plot, it worked
with a set of generic archetypes, enabling a more economical story line and
schematic characterisations. In addition to this, Body Heat (rudimentarily)
exhibited the importance that the high concept film was to place in such
elements as pre-sold properties, genres, stars and music: it was in the tradition of James M. Cain and film noir, it traded on William Hurt’s star potential (earned in Altered States, 1980), and it introduced the character of
Teddy Lewis (Mickey Rourke) through the lip-synching of the Bob Seger
hit, ‘Feel Like a Number’. Finally, Body Heat’s forthright sex scenes anticipated such neo-noirs as Against All Odds and No Way Out, and the ‘steamy’
sexual encounters (of later high-concept films) such as Angel Heart
(Alan Parker, 1987), Sea of Love (Harold Becker, 1989) and Basic Instinct
(Paul Verhoeven, 1992).
In the mid-1980s, Body Heat provided a kind of ‘rudimentary working
prototype’66 for medium to high-profile noir remakings such as Against All
Odds (Taylor Hackford, 1984) and No Way Out (Roger Donaldson, 1987).
Like Body Heat, both films were indirect (or transformed) remakes in that
they altered not only the title of their original properties but also characters, settings and narrative units. Against All Odds took up the barest
narrative outline from Out of the Past – one man is dispatched by another
to Mexico to locate a beautiful woman who has gone missing – and
reinvented this as a romantic thriller for the 1980s. In a similar way, No Way
Out retained (from The Big Clock) only a basic narrative framework – a man
conducts a murder investigation, on himself – but relocated the action from
119
a bustling, 1940s New York media empire to a pre-glasnost, 1980s
Washington Department of Defense. Both remakes differ, however, from
Body Heat in at least two respects. First, each of the films clearly acknowledges its noir sources. The credits of Against All Odds declare that it is ‘based
on the film Out of the Past written by Daniel Mainwaring’ (adapted from
his 1946 novel – penned under the pseudonym of Geoffrey Holmes – Build
My Gallows High). And the titles of No Way Out announce that it is ‘based
on the novel The Big Clock by Kenneth Fearing’ (filmed under the same
title in 1948). Second, whereas Body Heat is a self-conscious re-creation of
noir, Against All Odds and No Way Out are films that wear their knowledge
of noir with a ‘light touch’.67 These are films that eschew any overtly noir
mise-en-scène to embrace instead noir thematic elements and the generic
conventions of the 1980s Hollywood thriller. While the noir originals
provide a loose model (and ready point of reference), the absence of a noir
style means that the identification of these films as noir remakings has
as much to do with their critical reception as with any specific textual
borrowings, narrative or visual.
Acknowledged copyright and a well-established noir canon saw Against
All Odds and No Way Out consistently identified as transformed remakes of
classic noirs. Headlined by Variety as a ‘sexy remake [that] just misses’,68
Against All Odds struggled in the shadow of its precursor: ‘as subjects for
remakes go, Out of the Past [is] a hard act to follow, since the original is
such a paradigmatic [noir] work’.69 Foster Hirsch similarly describes
Against All Odds as a ‘shamefully misbegotten remake’, one that refuses
the challenge of capturing the ‘pulp poetry’ of Jeff Bailey’s (Robert
Mitchum’s) voice-over or recreating the formidable presence of Kathie’s
(Jane Greer’s) femme fatale.70 Although not entirely misplaced, these kinds
of comments fail to recognise the specific ways in which Against All Odds
– like Body Heat before it – transformed classic noir via some of the commercial imperatives of 1980s Hollywood. In the first instance, Against All
Odds traded on the popular success of Taylor Hackford’s previous feature,
An Officer and a Gentleman (1982), and on the profiles of its upcoming
stars: Jeff Bridges, James Woods and Rachel Ward. Second, Against All
Odds might well have translated the ‘hard sun and undulating shadows’ and
‘erotic fever’ of Out of the Past71 into ‘ “exotic” locations’ and ‘dutifully
sweat-drenched sex scenes’,72 but this can be understood as a high-concept
promotion of a ‘California-noir’ lifestyle of the type found in contemporaneous noirs like The Morning After (Sidney Lumet, 1986) remake of The
Blue Gardenia (Fritz Lang, 1953). For instance, the image of Terry (Jeff
Bridges) and Jessie (Rachel Ward) entwined on a tropical beach (reproduced for the Against All Odds promotional poster, print advertising and
120
soundtrack album) shaped the film’s narrative and commercial identity.
Finally, Phil Collins’s song (and music video) ‘Against All Odds (Take a
Look at Me Now)’ brought together the film’s picturesque locations and
star profiles in a cross-promotional strategy that most clearly characterised
the high-concept film of the 1980s.
The remakers of The Big Clock gave it a similar treatment, but (probably
due to the more modest reputation of its original) No Way Out’s critical
reception was more favourable than that of Against All Odds. Variety
headlined No Way Out as a ‘top notch remake with [a] sure fire thriller
formula’,73 and Hirsch notes that in ‘reclaiming noir as a Reagan-era star
vehicle, [No Way Out] achieves a rare degree of independence while still
satisfying genre requirements’.74 While No Way Out retains and revises
some of the details of the original – notably Louise Patterson’s (Elsa
Lanchester’s) inspired abstract painting of the suspected murderer, which
is updated to an endlessly protracted computer rendering – the remake
is constructed as a labyrinthine thriller for the 1980s. No Way Out is
primarily designed to showcase the talent of Kevin Costner, fresh off his
successful role as Elliot Ness in The Untouchables (Brian De Palma, 1987),
but also that of his co-actors, Gene Hackman and Sean Young. While the
fashion look of the film might now appear as ‘anachronistic’ as that of Body
Heat, No Way Out is determinedly voguish in its costuming (especially
Costner and Young’s outfits), and also in the interiors of Young’s
Georgetown apartment and the sounds of Maurice Jarre’s electronic
musical score. In addition (and as in Against All Odds and Body Heat before
it) the sex scenes are forthright, and Costner and Young’s first sexual tryst
takes place in the back of a limousine to the (then) popular beat of Rod
Stewart’s ‘Da Ya Think I’m Sexy?’ All of this suggests that, for its
contemporary audience, No Way Out appealed as much to the broad
generic conventions of the glossy Hollywood thriller (and date-movie) as
to any specific noir precursor.
Toward the end of the 1980s, D.O.A. (Rocky Morton and Annabel
Jankel, 1988) extended the remaking strategies of earlier 1980s neo-noirs
and anticipated the consolidation of noir as a commercial genre for the
1990s. Rudolph Maté’s 1950 film D.O.A. had been previously remade in the
late 1960s as Color Me Dead (aka. D.O.A. II, Eddie Davis, 1970). This little
known and rarely seen version of D.O.A. was part of a three-package
feature film deal – the other two films being It Takes All Kinds (1969) and
That Lady from Peking (1970) – that Australian producer-entrepreneur
Reg Goldsworthy had negotiated with US television director Eddie Davis.
Crediting only the original screenwriters – Russell Rouse and Clarence
Greene – the Davis version closely follows the dialogue and plot of Maté’s
121
film, but transforms the material through its EastmanColor photography,
Australian locations (notably Sydney and the Gold Coast) and the use of
(American) television actors: Tom Tryon in the Frank Bigelow role,
Carolyn Jones as his girlfriend Paula Gibson and Rick Jason in the equivalent of the Majak role originated by Luther Adler. Discarding the flashback structure of the original, the film begins with an atmospheric
night-sequence filmed through the windscreen of a car on the Sydney
Harbour Bridge, but soon settles into a routine (if convoluted) thriller with
Tryon attempting to track down his killers. Color Me Dead was released
theatrically in Australia (March 1970) but sold direct to cable television in
the United States. Situated midway between its classic 1950 original and
its neo-noir remaking in 1988, Color Me Dead has more in common with
television noirs such as Dragnet (NBC, 1951–59), Naked City (ABC,
1958–63) and The Fugitive (ABC, 1963–67) than with its direct precursor.
Moreover, the television aesthetic and US release pattern of Color Me Dead
adds weight to Todd Erikson’s suggestion that, through the 1960s, the noir
sensibility ‘remained dormant . . . being kept alive [mainly] through
television series that paid homage to it’.75
In contrast to Color Me Dead’s ‘direct’ remaking of Maté’s film, the
1988 ‘update’ might be described as a non-remake. Morton and Jankel’s
version retains the original title and gives Russell Rouse and Clarence
Greene a story-writing credit (along with screenwriter Charles Edward
Pogue), but this D.O.A. remake transforms the original property beyond
recognition. The basic narrative line becomes, in the remake, little more
than a high-concept story pitch for initialising the project and then marketing the product to the public: ‘Someone poisoned Dexter Cornell.
He’s got to find out why. He’s got to find out now. In twenty-fours hours
he’ll be Dead On Arrival’. In a similar way, the title ‘D.O.A.’ functions as
a saleable generic marker of, and literal shorthand for, neo-noir and a
readily identifiable (and transferable) logo for the promotion of the film.
Following the trajectory signalled by Body Heat, D.O.A. announces itself
as a high-tech noir, complete with a black-and-white prologue (brimming
with shadows and tilted compositions) in which Cornell (Dennis Quaid)
staggers into a police station to report that a murder has been committed
and that Cornell himself is the victim (see more on this below). The
remake takes this basic set-up from the original and then spins it into a
convoluted trail of bigamy and murder, infidelity and suicide. D.O.A. was
consistently dismissed for being a ‘fantasia of classic noir motifs strained
through an MTV filter’.76 Tom Milne, for instance, says that the revision
of the Rouse and Greene story is ‘tarted up in a hideous pop-promo
rash of distortions, computer tricks, and artsy irrelevancies’.77 D.O.A.
122
anticipates in its excessive reworking of its source a 1990s interest in
the readily consumable ‘stylistic, iconographic, and narrative markers
of classic film noir’.78 Despite its title, D.O.A. is less a direct remake of a
noir classic than a generic noir remaking: ‘a sight-and-sound neo-noir
spectacle’.79
The four-minute opening sequence of D.O.A. reads like a pop-primer
on the visual codes of film noir. The sequence begins with melancholic
music and a series of shaky hand-held shots of heavy rain washing over a
dark city street and its gutters. A shadowy figure makes its way through the
rain and, with the appearance of the film’s title, the music shifts to a driving
rock beat. There follows a close-up of the character’s feet (men’s shoes)
stepping more purposefully through the puddles, and then shots of lights
spelling out ‘Merry Xmas’ and the façade of a police precinct building.
A wide, ground-level shot of the character making his way up the steps of
the police station is followed by a close-up of his hand on the banister,
revealing traces of blood. In a replication of the title sequence of the Maté
version, tracking shots (shaky and tightly framed) now follow the character down the station corridors to a desk where he stumbles, knocking an
ornamental Christmas tree to the floor. The desk sergeant says ‘Jeez, buddy
you look dead’. The man asks to see a detective about a murder. In reply to
the sergeant’s question ‘who was murdered?’ the man (lifting his face for
the first time to reveal top-billed star Quaid) replies ‘I was’. The music
ends here and the final part of the segment (its last minute) begins with two
ceiling shots, the second (showing a slowly rotating fan) tilting down to
reveal the man, identified here as Cornell, in a shadowy interview room. A
detective reveals that Cornell is (or will be) the sixth murder victim, and
(gesturing to the clerk setting up video-equipment to record his statement)
Cornell says ‘when Cecil B. over there is ready, I’ll tell you all about it’. The
following shot is taken from a position behind the top-loading video
cassette deck. As the clerk pushes the videotape down into the player, the
camera tracks down disguising a cut that (in what is the opening shot of the
next segment) reveals a chalkboard. The camera tracks to the right as the
word ‘COLOR’ is written on the board, effecting the ‘trick’ transition to
colour photography and to the beginning of the flashback which shows
Cornell, a college English professor, in class.
Morton and Jankel’s ‘MTV remaking’ of D.O.A. supports Martin’s
suggestion that the visual style of classic noir has been taken up and
commodified not only by contemporary film makers, but also by television
programmers and creators of music videos.80 Following the early lead of
Body Heat, noir remakes of the middle to late 1980s – Against All Odds,
No Way Out, D.O.A. – chart the movement of film noir from its being
123
primarily a critical genre to its emergence as an industrial genre and
marketing category: ‘a major signifier of sleekly commodified artistic
ambition’.81 In Naremore’s assessment, an established noir canon means
that any attempt to reproduce the low-budget past of pulp fiction and film
noir now involves a self-conscious allusiveness: ‘contemporary noirs . . .
oscillate between elaborately designed, star-filled productions . . . and art
movies’.82 Examples of ‘direct’ noir remakes of the 1990s include Guncrazy
and The Underneath (mentioned above), and The Getaway (Roger
Donaldson, 1994; Sam Peckinpah, 1972) and Payback (Brian Helgeland,
1999; Point Blank, John Boorman, 1967). In a different way, Joel and Ethan
Coen have revisited the trinity of Cain, Hammett and Chandler across a
series of hardboiled homages. Their first feature, Blood Simple (1983),
updates Cain for the Reaganite 1980s; Miller’s Crossing (1990) adapts
Hammett, specifically Red Harvest and The Glass Key; and The Big
Lebowski (1998) follows Chandler, in particular Altman’s version of The
Long Goodbye (1973). Most recently, the Coen brothers have returned to
the Cain universe and the exact visual style of noir to fashion the laconic
‘anti-noir’ of The Man Who Wasn’t There (2001). Across these various
reworkings, the noir sensibility is transformed through such factors as the
conditions of regional (independent) filmmaking, political climate, ethnographic detail and auteurist inclination. Moreover (and as described in
Chapter 6) the ‘idea’ of film noir is sustained through specific discursive
formations, in particular a fully realised noir canon and its attendant
practices: the dissemination of noir across a mediascape of film, television,
photography and fashion, the discussion and citation of noirs in popular
and academic film criticism, the selective release and re-release of noirs to
theatrical and video distribution windows, and (in circular fashion) the
decision of neo-noir filmmakers – notably Luc Besson, Quentin Tarantino
and John Woo – to evoke earlier works and recreate cinema history. Beyond
matters of narrative style and visual traits, beyond questions of originality
and fidelity, an understanding of film noir and its 1980s remakings (and
beyond) resides primarily in the determination of a discursive structure, in
issues of cultural history and memory. As in classic noir, it is a question of
how the past continues to inform – has a firm hold of – the present.
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
Naremore, More Than Night, p. 11.
Ibid., p. 10.
Ibid., p. 26.
Ibid., pp. 32–3.
124
5. Ibid., p. 37.
6. For an account of noir remakes see Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways,
pp. 23–65.
7. For accounts of neo-noir see Silver and Ward, Film Noir, pp. 398–442; and
Erickson, ‘Kill Me Again’, pp. 307–29.
8. Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, p. 145.
9. Ibid., p. 147.
10. Ibid., pp. 145–6.
11. Yakir, ‘The Postman’s Words’, p. 21.
12. Schickel, Double Indemnity, p. 16.
13. Quoted in ibid., p. 20.
14. Yakir, ‘ “The Postman” Rings Six Times’, pp. 18–20.
15. Porfirio, ‘Whatever Happened to the Film Noir?’, pp. 102–11. See also Biesen,
‘Raising Cain with the Censors, Again’, pp. 41–8.
16. Schickel, Double Indemnity, p. 24.
17. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, p. 7.
18. Cain, preface to The Butterfly (1947), quoted in Krutnik, ‘Desire,
Transgression and James M. Cain’, p. 32.
19. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, p. 123.
20. Combs, ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, p. 96.
21. Quoted in Thomson, ‘Raising Cain’, p. 28.
22. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, pp. 8 and 15.
23. Porfirio, ‘Whatever Happened to the Film Noir?’, p. 104.
24. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, pp. 16 and 19.
25. See the Production Code of the MPPDA reprinted in Jowett, Film: The
Democratic Art, pp. 468–72.
26. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, p. 113.
27. Milne, ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, p. 100.
28. Combs, ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, p. 95.
29. Cain, The Postman Always Rings Twice, pp. 21 and 16.
30. Har., ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, p. 133.
31. Thomson, ‘Raising Cain’, pp. 27–8.
32. Kael, Taking It All In, pp. 179 and 182.
33. Quoted in Thomson, ‘Raising Cain’, p. 28.
34. Ibid.
35. Ray, A Certain Tendency of the Hollywood Cinema, p. 267.
36. Kael, Taking It All In, p. 179.
37. Ibid., p. 178.
38. Thomson, ‘Raising Cain’, p. 25.
39. Combs, ‘Rev. of Detour’, p. 146.
40. Martin, Mean Streets and Raging Bulls, p. 25.
41. Carroll, ‘The Future of Allusion’, pp. 55–64.
42. Ibid., p. 61, emphasis added.
43. Ibid., p. 54.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
72.
73.
74.
75.
76.
77.
78.
79.
80.
81.
82.
125
Thomson, ‘Raising Cain’, p. 30.
Combs, ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, p. 96.
Ibid.
See Krutnik, ‘Desire, Transgression and James M. Cain’, p. 31.
Naremore, More Than Night, pp. 81–2.
Krutnik, ‘Desire, Transgression and James M. Cain’, p. 38.
Schickel, Double Indemnity, pp. 21–2.
Chute, ‘Tropic of Kasdan’, p. 49.
Ibid.
Quoted in ibid., p. 54.
Kael, Taking It All In, p. 255.
Jenkins, ‘Rev. of Body Heat’, p. 4.
Ibid.
Martin, Mean Streets and Raging Bulls, p. 53.
Ibid.
Jameson, ‘Postmodernism and Consumer Society’, p. 117.
Naremore, More Than Night, p. 192.
Erickson, ‘Kill Me Again’, pp. 314–16.
Naremore, More Than Night, p. 192.
Ibid.
Chute, ‘Tropic of Kasdan’, p. 49.
See Wyatt, High Concept.
Martin, Mean Streets and Raging Bulls, p. 29.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, p. 33.
Har., ‘Rev. of Against All Odds’, p. 24.
Pulleine, ‘Rev. of Against All Odds’, p. 171.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, pp. 40–3.
Ibid., p. 41.
Pulleine, ‘Rev. of Against All Odds’, p. 171.
Lor., ‘Rev. of No Way Out’, p. 12.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, p. 33.
Erickson, ‘Kill Me Again’, p. 311.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, p. 54. See also Lor., ‘Rev. of D.O.A.’, p. 14.
Milne, ‘Rev. of D.O.A.’, p. 78.
Martin, Mean Streets and Raging Bulls, p. 118.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, p. 55.
Martin, Mean Streets and Raging Bulls, p. 29.
Naremore, More Than Night, p. 10.
Ibid., p. 160.
Part III Remaking as Critical Category
CHAPTER 5
Audiences
In an essay on the adaptation of Herman Melville’s Billy Budd, Sailor (as
Claire Denis’s Beau Travail, 1999), Catherine Grant points out that ‘the
most important act that films and their surrounding discourses need to
perform in order to communicate . . . their status as adaptations is to (make
their audiences) recall the adapted work, or the cultural memory of it’.1
This process of recollection is, of course, realised through texts and is
inseparable from them, but alongside textual descriptions it is necessary to
analyse those textual activators2 – the various extra-textual modes and
means – which enable the recognition of adaptations and their sources. In
the case of remaking, the ability to identify and cross reference a remake
similarly comes about not only through prior knowledge of previous texts
and intertextual comparisons, but also from the extra-textual discourses
surrounding the viewing experience. As in the case of film genre, it is
necessary to acknowledge the multi-dimensional nature of remaking, not
only textual structures but contextual determinants, such factors as ‘the
importance of audience knowledge and audience expectation’, and of
‘industry [discourses] and film reviewers’.3 Additionally, because remaking
can refer to more general structures of intertextuality (quotation, allusion,
adaptation), the identification of a film remake is not restricted to the recognition of textual patterns of similarity, but can be achieved through classifying statements and ‘common cultural consensus’.4 This serves to shift
attention from the texts of remaking to an interest in audience activity and
institutional contexts, raising such critical questions as: ‘How [is] “a
common cultural consensus” . . . established? What agencies and institutions are involved? What is the role of the film industry? [and] What is the
role of film critics [and] film reviewers?’5
The understanding that remaking needs to be treated not simply as a
quality of film texts, but as a ‘complex situation’6 requires that attention be
directed toward those ‘factors that impinge on audience expectations, the
130
construction of . . . corpuses, [and] processes of labelling and naming’.7
Steve Neale pursues these issues with reference to film genre, following
John Ellis to describe a film’s narrative image as ‘an idea of a film [that] is
widely circulated and promoted’, and which identifies the text for uptake
and consumption.8 Contributing to such images are: (1) institutionalised
public discourses (press, radio, television); (2) unofficial ‘everyday’ discourses (word of mouth, peer reviews, the Internet); and (3) film industry
discourses (publicity, marketing, exhibition).9 More particularly, a film’s
narrative image can be related to the category of transtextuality that
Gérard Genette describes as paratextuality: ‘those liminal devices and conventions, both within the [text] (peritext) and outside it (epitext), that
mediate the [text] to the reader’.10 In the case of film remakes, these devices
would include such peritextual materials as titles and subtitles, dedications
and epigraphs, and epitextual elements such as production notes and
diaries, authorial correspondence and interviews, and authorised promotional materials, including trailers, posters, soundtracks, press-kits, official
websites and the like. Genette attempts to limit this category, admitting
only those paratexts that the authors (writers, directors) or their associates
(producers, distributors) accept responsibility for. But paratextuality
might be expanded to describe ‘all [of] the accessory messages and commentaries that come to surround the text and at times become virtually
indistinguishable from it’.11 This chapter considers the vital role that these
paratexts play first in communicating a film’s status as remake, and also in
invoking an intertextual framework within which to comprehend and
evaluate the new film.
Some remakes are based on highly recognisable properties. These might
be films that have reached a wide audience (King Kong, The Parent Trap),
or hold some canonical standing (Psycho, Lolita), or enjoy a cult following
(The Texas Chainsaw Massacre, Shaft). Such remakes announce their status
through their naming, with the title of the original property being ‘the first,
and most obvious, marker of an intertextual relationship with their
“source” ’.12 Indeed, in some recent, high-concept remakings – Planet of
the Apes, The Italian Job, Dawn of the Dead – the title may be among the
few elements retained from the original, usually in order to provoke interest and ‘to take advantage of a pre-existing market’.13 But just as many
remakes are derived from little known or rarely seen films (Meet the
Parents, Traffic), and many others (The Truth About Charlie, Wicker Park)
alter the titles of their sources, disguising their origins but also signalling
the kinds of transformations – aesthetic, generic, ideological – operative in
the remaking.14 For instance, in a double movement, the title City of Angels
131
(Brad Silberling, 1998) retains a thematic similarity – an angel ‘falls’ to
earth – to its original, Wings of Desire (Der Himmel über Berlin, Wim
Wenders, 1987) while signalling its cultural and geographic relocation to
the city of Los Angeles. In another case, the title Tortilla Soup (Maria
Ripoll, 2001) takes Ang Lee’s story of an ageing gourmet cook and his three
daughters (Eat Drink Man Woman [Yin shi nan nu], 1994) and adjusts it to
the ‘tastes’ of its Latino-American family (and presumed market). And
finally, Treasure Planet (John Musker and Ron Clements, 2002) signals the
updating and generic recasting of Robert Louis Stevenson’s 1883 classic
Treasure Island as a space adventure-fantasy. Perhaps more importantly,
and regardless of whether the remake retains or alters the title of its source,
a film’s remake status – at least in a legal-industrial sense – is secured by a
second peritextual marker: an on-screen credit. Such a marker can be
either a complete credit (original title and screenwriters) or one that lists
only the original writers. In either case, this credit not only maintains economic and intellectual property rights, but is essential to the identification
of a (single) original source. For instance, the end credit of Last Man
Standing (1996) – ‘based on a screenplay by Ryuzo Kikushima and Akira
Kurosawa’ – secures the film not as a remake of similarly plotted texts –
Sergio Leone’s A Fistful of Dollars (1964) or Dashiell Hammett’s novel
Red Harvest – but locates its origin in Akira Kurosawa’s Yojimbo (1961).
The process of identification begun with the peritextual markers of
titles and credits is extended and amplified through the adjacent, epitextual zones of industry promotion and marketing, distribution and exhibition. In the case of adaptations, it is not uncommon for a film to directly
advertise itself – ground its credentials and value – in a classic or popular
literary (or other) textualised source. For instance, the trailer for Cold
Mountain (Anthony Minghella, 2003) announces that it is ‘based on the
National Book Award-winning novel by Charles Frazier’, and a title card
in the trailer for The Human Stain (Robert Benton, 2003) advises that it is
‘based on the novel by Pulitzer Prize winning author Philip Roth’.
Although it is unusual for a remake – especially in its theatrical release – to
draw attention to its source in this way, it is not entirely unheard of in ancillary markets. For example, the video cassette package for Warner Brothers’
third version of W. R. Burnett’s novel High Sierra describes the remake –
I Died a Thousand Times (Stuart Heisler, 1955) – as ‘one of the lushest and
most expensively mounted gangster epics of the 50s’, but also admits that
it is ‘based on High Sierra, the 1941 classic that made Humphrey Bogart a
star’.15 In another example, King Kong (John Guillermin, 1976) seeks to
locate its appeal, and status as modern ‘classic’, in its updating of the 1933
RKO original:
132
The Big Apple is again besieged by the monstrous King Kong. Jeff Bridges
and Jessica Lange star in this ambitious remake of the 1933 original, which
adds a great deal of camp and good fun to the story. Again, the gargantuan
ape battles attacking aircraft high above the streets of New York, this time
plunging from the top of the World Trade Center to his death amidst thousands of horrified onlookers. King Kong won an Oscar for special effects, and
the horror and the thrills are brought anew to another generation in this
classic and classy production.16
More commonly, press releases identify a film as a remake and frame publicity discourse around its remake status.17 For example, the Buena Vista
International press kit for the Disney remake of Mighty Joe Young (Ron
Underwood, 1998) announces that the ‘ambitious update of the classic
film’, Mighty Joe Young (Ernest B. Schoedsack, 1949), had its origins in
discussions between Disney Studios and RKO Pictures (home of the original film), and in a shared ‘admiration for the RKO treasure and . . .
enthusiastic desire to update the much-loved classic for a present-day
audience’. The press notes at once underline the status of the original, its
enduring themes and the opportunity it provided for filmmakers to create
a new (original), quality entertainment. The press kit quotes director Ron
Underwood: ‘I fondly remember the original film, and wanted to capture
the same magic that I felt watching it . . . This movie uniquely fit my interest and my love for the big American movie. It possesses so much humanity and emotion’. Producer Tom Jacobson similarly says of the remake:
‘What a great opportunity! I loved the original movie [and] I knew it would
be challenging and exciting creatively to make, and would be a unique and
special movie-going experience – the type of entertainment which transports you to another world’. These views are more widely disseminated
through the review materials subsequently generated by the production
company press packs (more on this below). In the case of Mighty Joe
Young’s Australian theatrical release these press materials formed the basis
of a centre-page lift-out in The Sunday Age newspaper. One side featured
a colour poster of ‘Joe’ with co-star Charlize Theron (who plays Jill
Young); the reverse side consisted of a Cinemedia Screen Education ‘study
guide’. Alongside promotional stills, the guide drew attention to the historical background of the film, not only its status as remake, but its lineage
from King Kong (1933) through to other ape films such as the King Kong
remake (1976) and Gorillas in the Mist (Michael Apted, 1988).18
The type of production company materials – synopses, filmographies
for cast and crew, technical details, publicity stills – once made available
only to members of the media, have more recently become widely distributed on official websites, and have been extended to include trailers and
133
various promotional downloads (wallpapers, screen savers and the like).
More specifically, under the heading of ‘production notes’, filmmakers –
producers, writers, directors – will typically express their interest in, and
motivation for, remaking an original film (underlining its classic status and
enduring qualities) and then go on to describe the various ways in which
they have transformed that property for a contemporary audience. The following excerpts are recent examples of promotional discourse taken from
official websites (emphasis has been added):
Meet Joe Black (Martin Brest, 1998):
Meet Joe Black is the culmination of two decades of gestation on the part of
director/producer Martin Brest and was inspired by a character from the
1920s stage play adapted for the screen in 1934 as Death Takes A Holiday
[Mitchell Leisen]. ‘I first saw the original film over 20 years ago,’ Brest says,
‘and it intrigued me; haunted me, really. There was a suggestion in the old movie
of what might be a great story, but it was a story that had yet to be discovered.
We had to start from scratch because rather than do a remake I wanted to
explore an element that sparked my interest.’19
Sweet November (Pat O’Connor, 2001):
Producer Deborah Aal first saw the original Sweet November [Robert Ellis
Miller, 1968] in 1969, and was so deeply affected by its emotional impact that
the story stayed with her. ‘Long before I ever thought of the possibility of
making movies, it was one of the films I most wanted to see remade,’ says
Aal. ‘I knew there was a way of contemporising the story without losing what was
so wonderful about the original. The story is very much about the enduring
and abiding strength of the human heart.’20
Vanilla Sky (Cameron Crowe, 2001):
Alejandro Amenábar’s 1997 Spanish romantic thriller, Abre Los Ojos, became
the catalyst for Vanilla Sky. Producer Paula Wagner says the film appealed
to her, Tom Cruise and Cameron Crowe, and it offered an opportunity for
them to work together again: . . . ‘To us, Vanilla Sky is the equivalent of
doing a cover to a great song. We pay homage to the film, but we also hope to
bring our own nuances and interpretations to it.’ [. . .] Crowe adds that he also
wanted to take a deeper look into the meaning of love and sex in the new millennium . . . ‘Abre Los Ojos inspired me to make my own statement. It was
like a perfect kind of Petri dish to explore all this stuff. Hopefully we’ve created
a cool dialogue with Amenábar’s original movie.’21
Insomnia (Christopher Nolan, 2002):
Originally presented in the 1997 Norwegian film Insomnia [Erik
Skjoldbjaerg] this premise and the protagonist’s unique predicament [a
veteran cop struggles to find respite from the relentless Midnight Sun and
his own distorted judgement] intrigued producers Paul Junger Witt and
134
Ed McDonnell, who began developing an American version of the story
with screenwriter Hillary Seitz. ‘Like Christopher Nolan, we loved the original film,’ Witt says, ‘but we viewed it as so culturally specific that we knew our
version would not be a traditional remake or a literal translation.’22
The Italian Job (F. Gary Gray, 2003):
This updated version of The Italian Job pays homage to the first film [The
Italian Job, Peter Collinson, 1969] but in no way tries to replicate it. Director
F. Gary Gray and producer Donald De Line both contend that today’s audiences will be enjoying a very different film full of all new and very clever twists.
‘I liked a lot of things about the original,’ says Gray. ‘It had great style and
unforgettable performances. But the film that we’ve made is for modern audiences, with updated technology.’23
Dawn of the Dead (Zack Snyder, 2004):
A long time fan of horror films and the ‘not-quite-dead’ sub-genre, producer
Eric Newman remembers, ‘Growing up, I had always loved those movies, but
Dawn of the Dead was my favourite. There were always other zombie movies
around, but Dawn felt to me like the one movie that stood out from the rest.
I feel that the genre has not received the attention it deserves in this generation.’ [. . .]
‘This is a re-envisioning of a classic. There was not, is not, a valid reason to
“remake” Dawn of the Dead. That’s not what we set out to do, not what any
of us wanted. There are some amazing updates on some great films – I love
Kaufman’s Invasion of the Body Snatchers, Carpenter’s The Thing,
Cronenberg’s The Fly. They’re great movies that add to rather than diminish the original films. We really saw this as a chance to continue the zombie genre
for a new audience,’ offers Newman. [. . .]
[Director Zack] Snyder echoes the producers when he explains, ‘I had no
desire to remake the picture. A remake, to me, is you take the script and you
shoot it again. And that can be cool, but you don’t mess with it. A re-filming
of the original version was so not needed. Reinterpretation is what we wanted
to do. Re-envision it. We put some steroids into it. I don’t want to have this
film compared to any other – our Dawn is its own thing with its own personality, voice and experience.’24
These statements typically operate first by ascribing value to the earlier
text (why remake a film if it doesn’t have something to recommend it to
begin with?) and then suggesting the various filters – technological (The
Italian Job), cultural (Insomnia), personal (Sweet November), existential
(Meet Joe Black), authorial (Vanilla Sky) – enlisted in its transfiguration.
The most elaborate of the above statements is that which attends the
remaking of Dawn of the Dead. The original Dawn of the Dead (1979) was
the middle film of George A. Romero’s infamous trilogy that began with
135
the low-budget, black-and-white horror of Night of the Living Dead (1968)
and culminated in Day of the Dead (1985). The cycle has proven to be
hugely influential. Referenced in dozens of films, Romero’s Dead trilogy
has also spawned remakes (Night of the Living Dead, Tom Savini, 1990),
spoofs (The Return of the Living Dead, Dan O’Bannon, 1985) and spin-offs
(Resident Evil, Paul Anderson, 2002). Most recently the trilogy has provided material for Shawn of the Dead (Edgar Wright, 2004) and (in the
wake of the Dawn of the Dead remake) Romero has undertaken a fourth
feature, Land of the Dead (2005). Among this group of films Romero’s
Dawn of the Dead has earned itself a substantial reputation, not only for
the visceral jolts of its raw and excessive gore but also for what is seen as its
commentary on consumer culture. In the film, the living dead (zombies)
are irresistibly attracted to a suburban shopping mall where a small group
of survivors takes refuge. As one character puts it, the dead are drawn to
the mall because they dimly remember that ‘this was an important place in
their lives’. The press kit comments (by director Zack Snyder and producer Eric Newman) for the new version attest to a desire to retain the aura
of the cult classic, while reviving or resurrecting the (dead) franchise as a
digitally boosted, big-budget genre movie. Moreover (and this is at least
implicit in the other press kit extracts, too), it sets up a contrast between
(the repetition of) the classical ‘remake’ and (the innovation) of the modern
‘update’ or re-envisioning. In this way, the comments not only advertise and
provoke the viewer to see a particular film (as) remake, but contribute to
the larger discourse of contemporary remaking.
The attention that these materials draw to the processes (and category)
of remaking is sometimes expanded and elaborated upon in special extras
packages that feature on many DVD releases. For instance, the DVD for
The Italian Job remake replicates and extends the press kit materials (cited
above) by way of a number of ‘making of ’ short documentary items. One
of these, ‘Pedal to the Metal: the Making of The Italian Job’, begins with
director F. Gary Gray announcing that ‘because it [The Italian Job] was
inspired by another movie I wanted to watch the first movie first. So
I rented the original Italian Job and I watched it and I loved it’. Producer
Donald De Line follows, saying ‘The Italian Job is a remake of a movie that
Paramount made in 1968’. Some brief scenes from the original film follow,
before executive producer James Dyer moves in to stress the originality of
the new undertaking: ‘This movie [Gray’s version] is a little different. It’s
not a remake whatsoever, but it does use similar tools to tell the story: heist,
armoured truck, gold, Mini-Coopers’. As in the case of the website production notes, the strategy is to combine a focus on the original with an
emphasis on the transmutations that have been effected to accommodate a
136
contemporary audience. A second documentary, ‘Putting the Words
on the Page for The Italian Job’, takes up exactly this line, stressing the
fact that the 1960s version is a point of departure rather than replication.
Co-writers Donna Powers and Wayne Powers state: ‘We wanted to respect
that [original] movie and almost leave it as its own beast, and . . . the
remake be our own [while] at the same time maintain[ing] some of the icons
of the [first] film: the Minis [and] the chase in the tunnel’. Gray follows up,
adding ‘I read the [Powers] script and I loved it. It was totally different,
though. I thought it was going to be a remake but it was really just . . . inspired
by the original. It wasn’t the same story nor the same script’.25
The DVD for the Solaris remake (Steven Soderbergh, 2002) adopts a
similar approach, at once identifying the original picture and distancing
the remake from it. In doing this the DVD extras exploit a familiar strategy whereby the ins and outs of the remake (and remake practice in
general) are evaded by calling up the new version as a fresh ‘adaptation’
of the original literary source.26 Andrei Tarkovsky’s earlier 1972 version
follows the basic outline of Stanislaw Lem’s 1961 science fiction novel to
tell the story of psychologist Kris Kelvin, who is sent to a space station
orbiting Solaris, a planet whose surface consists of a sentient ocean. The
planet reacts to the scientists probing its surface by sending ‘visitors’ –
living beings created from their innermost fears and desires – to the
station. Kris’s visitor is his wife Hari (Rheya in the novel and remake)
whom he has mourned since her suicide. Despite retaining the structure
and some of the dialogue of Lem’s novel, Tarkovsky’s film (as commentators have noted) is less interested in the novel’s scientific speculation
and psychological insights than in developing questions of family and
morality.27 Early reports indicated that Soderbergh’s version would steer
closer to the themes of the novel. But reviewers noted that the remake
transformed the source material (even more than Tarkovsky’s version),
abandoning its broad philosophical questions to focus on the love
story: the relationship between Kris and Rheya, and (in a reprise of
Hitchcock’s Vertigo, 1958) their opportunity for a ‘second chance’.28 The
‘making of ’ extras on the 20th Century Fox DVD support this type of
interpretation. For instance, in an episode titled ‘Inside Solaris’, producer James Cameron states: ‘this [picture] isn’t really a remake of the
Tarkovsky film. It’s a different adaptation of the underlying novel by
Stanislaw Lem’. In another, ‘Solaris: Behind the Planet’, Soderbergh
similarly intones: ‘my interest in Solaris was really driven by the ideas at
the centre of the book’. Curiously enough, the screenplay that is reproduced in the extras package states that the film is ‘based on the novel by
Stanislaw Lem and the screenplay by Friedrich Gorentstein and Andrei
137
Tarkovsky’. But throughout the documentary extras Soderbergh consistently pushes away from the Tarkovsky film to the earlier source,
underlining his interest in a ‘great love story’ and his own unique (auteur)
vision: ‘it [the novel] just seemed to be about everything I’m interested
in personally’.29
In addition to the above production notes and DVD extras, comparison
between remakes and originals is sometimes encouraged by the recycling of
original artwork in advertising and promotion. This is the case in the packaging for the DVD editions of the feature film, Insomnia. The Norwegian
film version, which opened theatrically on just two screens in the US (May
1998), earned a total of around $200,000, compared to its remake which
opened on 2,610 screens (May 2002) for total box-office earnings of around
$67 million.30 The American remake adheres to the basic template of the
original, while accommodating Hollywood genre elements and transferring
the action from the never-ending daylight of the Scandinavian summer to
that of the Alaskan wilderness.31 Additionally, it recasts Al Pacino in the role
created by Stellan Skarsgard, drawing on Pacino’s wired-cop persona from
Serpico (Sidney Lumet, 1973), Sea of Love (Harold Becker, 1989) and Heat
(Michael Mann, 1995) to create a character at once more sympathetic and
more tragic. In 2003 the Umbrella Entertainment group released the
Norwegian original to DVD using the identity of the US remake to lift its
profile. The reverse side of the DVD jacket reads: ‘Insomnia is a brilliantly
crafted and compelling thriller. Dark and creepy with excellent performances throughout, it is a must-see for anyone who enjoyed the
Pacino/Williams re-make’. More than this, the (seemingly paradoxical)
invitation to rediscover the appeal of the remake (in the original) is communicated instantly through the replication of artwork from the promotion of
the US remake. The DVD jackets for both versions feature a basic colour
scheme in shades of white, blue and red. In both instances, the title
‘Insomnia’ appears in large blue letters (accented with horizontal bars) and
other wording is in smaller red letters. The US version (Buena Vista Home
Entertainment, 2003) places the title between stills (in widescreen ratio) of
stars Al Pacino (top) and Robin Williams and Hilary Swank (bottom).
Above the picture of Pacino is lettering identifying the film’s pictured stars
(Pacino, Williams and Swank). The Norwegian version places the title at
the top, and separates its two widescreen windows (which feature composite stills from the film) with a smaller red caption that reads ‘the original
version’. In this case, it is not the ‘prestige’ of the European original that
bestows (aesthetic) value of the remake, but the reputation (generic, economic) of the new version that invites comparison with the source.
138
In addition to these various production practices, a further important
factor in the recognition of remakes is their placement in a particular
exhibition (or delivery) context. In the case of video/DVD, the recognition
and comparison of remakes and originals is encouraged by the (often)
simultaneous release (and re-release) of different film versions in the home
video distribution window, and their adjacent display in video stores.
Insomnia provides one example, and others include Paramount’s concurrent release of both versions of The Italian Job to DVD in October 2003,
and the DVD release for The Truth About Charlie (Jonathan Demme, 2002)
which included a bonus disc carrying the original, Charade (Stanley
Donen, 1963). As pointed out in the introductory chapter, remakes and
originals often enjoy a symbiotic (rather than competitive) relationship in
the contemporary media marketplace. In a related instance, the Criterion
Collection website provides a list of some twenty-three titles – including
Insomnia and Charade – which ‘inspired subsequent remakes or reimaginations’.32 Television networks can play a similar role – at once crosspromoting their own programmes and drawing attention to remakes – by
broadcasting films to coincide with new releases. For instance, the
Australian theatrical release of the Shaft remake (John Singleton, 2000) in
October 2000 saw the Seven Network broadcast all three Shaft features
from the 1970s on consecutive weekends: Shaft (Gordon Parks, 1971) on
22 October, Shaft’s Big Score (Gordon Parks, 1972) on 29 October and
Shaft in Africa (John Guillerman, 1973) on 5 November.
Similar strategies can be found theatrically in repertory, festival and
cinematheque programming. Although the selection of films in these contexts usually draws attention to continuities through categories such as
authorship, genre and production cycles, there are cases where films are
brought together in order to demonstrate influence and direct remaking.
One such example was the National Film Theatre’s (UK) February and
March 1990 scheduling of several remake pairs under the heading ‘Make
mine a double’. These included High Noon/Outland (Fred Zinnemann,
1952; Peter Hyams, 1981), Invasion of the Body Snatchers (Don Siegel,
1956; Philip Kaufman, 1978), Batman (Leslie H. Martinson, 1966; Tim
Burton, 1989) and remakes of the classic noirs: Double Indemnity (Billy
Wilder, 1944), The Postman Always Rings Twice (Tay Garnett, 1946), Out
of the Past (Jacques Tourneur, 1947) and The Big Clock (John Farrow,
1948). A more recent example is the 2003 Remembrance cinema programme
at the Australian Centre for the Moving Image (Melbourne) which focused
on works that possessed some ‘historical recollection of cinema’. In this
exhibition, auteurism plays a role in organising audience reception, drawing
attention to the way remaking creates an opportunity for filmmakers to
139
make classic texts their own, ‘over-writing them with their own traceable
signatures, perhaps reconfiguring them by incorporating references to
other (rewritten) intertexts’.33 The notes for this programme announce
that ‘film maker cinephiles’ – such as Jean-Luc Godard, Martin Scorsese
and Todd Haynes – express their love of films and filmmaking through ‘the
technical reconstruction of shots; the reconfiguration of narrative; the
reprising of gestures, characters, performance; and by reusing excerpts or
musical refrains’.34 Remake series gathered together for the Remembrance
exhibition include: Rio Bravo (John Ford, 1959) and Assault on Precinct 13
(John Carpenter, 1976); The Searchers (John Ford, 1952) and Taxi Driver
(Martin Scorsese, 1976); Vertigo (Alfred Hitchcock, 1958) and Sunless
(Chris Marker, 1962); Blow-Up (Michelangelo Antonioni, 1966) and The
Conversation (Francis Ford Coppola, 1974); All That Heaven Allows
(Douglas Sirk, 1955), Imitation of Life (Douglas Sirk, 1959) and Far From
Heaven (Todd Haynes, 2002). Significantly, not one of these is an industrial or credited remaking, but rather a remake identified and maintained
by critical and exhibition practices that are cognisant of theories of
film authorship. Todd Haynes’ Far From Heaven – described in the
Remembrance programme as a ‘loving tribute to the cinema of Douglas
Sirk’ – provides a useful example.
Like Rainer Werner Fassbinder’s 1974 film Fear Eats the Soul (Angst
essen Seele auf), Far From Heaven is widely recognised as a tribute to the
films of Douglas Sirk. More particularly, both films are uncredited but critically acknowledged (transformed) remakes of Sirk’s 1956 melodrama All
That Heaven Allows. Contributing to the critical discourse around the
latter film was an appreciation of several Sirk pictures (including Written
on the Wind, Imitation of Life and All That Heaven Allows) that Fassbinder
wrote some three years before the release of Fear Eats the Soul. As Laura
Mulvey points out in an early article on Sirk and melodrama,35 it is ‘impossible’ to better Fassbinder’s ‘plot synopsis’ of All That Heaven Allows:
Jane Wyman is a rich widow, and Rock Hudson is pruning her trees. In Jane’s
garden is a ‘love tree’, which only blooms where love is present, and so Jane’s
and Rock’s chance encounter becomes a great love. But Rock is fifteen years
younger than Jane, and Jane is completely integrated into the social life of an
American small town. Rock is a primitive type, and Jane has a lot to lose –
her girlfriends, the good reputation she owes to her deceased husband, her
children. In the beginning Rock loves nature, and Jane at first doesn’t love
anything, because she has everything. That’s a pretty shitty starting point for
a great love. Her, him, and the world around them . . . Finally Jane tells Rock
she’s leaving him, because of the idiotic children and so on. Rock doesn’t put
up much of a fight – he has nature, after all. And Jane sits there on Christmas
140
Eve; the children are going to leave her, and have given her a television set . . .
Then later Jane goes back to Rock, because she keeps having headaches,
which happens to all of us if we don’t fuck often enough. But when she’s
back, it isn’t a happy ending, even though they’re together, the two of them.36
As Mulvey points out, All That Heaven Allows followed Sirk’s success with
Magnificent Obsession and prompted Universal to give him the budgets and
creative freedom that enabled the development of his ‘mature style’. All
That Heaven Allows, she writes, ‘contains all the elements of characteristically Sirkian composition: light, shade, colour, and camera angles combine
with his trademark use of mirrors to break up the surface of the screen.
Here are all the components of the “melodramatic” style on which Sirk’s
critical reputation is based’.37 Impressed by Sirk’s ability to make films that
combined the public appeal of melodrama with broad social criticism,
Fassbinder undertook his own remarkable cycle of transformed melodramas, including a remake of All That Heaven Allows. In Fear Eats the
Soul, Fassbinder amplifies the basic premise of Sirk’s film, transposing its
1950s middle-class New England setting to 1970s working-class Munich,
to tell the story of a widowed sixty-year old charwoman (Emmi) who falls
in love with a Moroccan immigrant (Ali) who is thirty years her junior.
Despite differences in age, race and social standing, the two marry, but
Emmi is ostracised by her neighbours, co-workers and her three adult children. The couple’s relationship comes close to breakdown before Emmi
and Ali are finally reconciled in a tenuously happy ending. Striving for a
balance between stylisation and realism, Fassbinder transposes the ‘locale,
period and atmosphere’ of Sirk’s film38 to examine the melodrama’s themes
of ‘tensions in the family, and between sex and generations’.39 In the
process, Fassbinder not only extends and makes explicit these elements
(kept at some distance in Sirk’s restrained original), but by introducing the
issue of race ‘condenses’ All That Heaven Allows and Imitation of Life,
Sirk’s most engaged examination of racial tension.
Like Fear Eats the Soul, Far From Heaven is a tribute to Douglas Sirk
and his melodramas of the 1950s. Amy Taubin describes it as a ‘reworking’
of All That Heaven Allows,40 and Richard Falcon says that its ‘wholesale
appropriation of Sirkian narrative, colour palette, mise-en-scène and acting
styles [makes] it a unique homage’.41 Sharon Willis describes the opening
sequence of Far From Heaven as one that ‘feels almost “traced”, as if superimposing its frame on All That Heaven Allows’.42 As she points out, both
films begin with a view of a clock tower framed by autumnal leaves, which
gives way to a high-angle establishing shot of a gleaming sky-blue and
white station wagon crossing a neat town square. In addition to this initial
141
‘quotation’, Far From Heaven more generally borrows from All That
Heaven Allows a plot trajectory that sees a middle-class woman become
involved with her gardener. But Haynes reframes the relationship as one
of interracial intimacy, casting Julianne Moore as Cathy Whitaker, a
married mother of two who turns to widowed African-American gardener
Raymond (Dennis Haysbert) for comfort when she discovers that her
husband Frank (Dennis Quaid) is a closeted homosexual. For Willis, these
transformations constitute ‘an almost electrifying network of condensation and displacement’ whereby Haynes’s film not only remakes All That
Heaven Allows, but ‘recasts Written on the Wind’s drama of heterosexual
discontent’ and the set-up of Imitation of Life, ‘which stages its twin
maternal melodramas within the framework of inter- and intraracial
difference’.43 This suggestion – that Haynes remakes not just one but three
of Sirk’s most memorable melodramas – is taken further by Mulvey (and
others) who recognise in Far From Heaven elements of Max Ophuls’s 1949
melodrama, The Reckless Moment (itself recently remade as The Deep End,
Scott McGehee and David Siegel, 2001).44 More than this, the piling of
cross-race romance upon cross-class romance (together with the complicating issue of homosexuality) suggests that Far From Heaven is filtered
through Fear Eats the Soul, which Haynes seems to acknowledge by ‘replicating’, in Cathy and Raymond’s dance at the roadhouse, a scene in which
Emmi and Ali dance in a dingy bar under the scrutiny of disapproving
patrons.
Far From Heaven not only transposes the narrative tensions – sexual,
racial and social – of Sirk’s and other melodramas (those of Fassbinder,
Ophuls and John Stahl45), but recreates ‘a world where meaning is derived
from mise-en-scène [and] artifice is the essence of expression’.46 Haynes
and cinematographer Edward Lachman strove to work within the same
limitations as Sirk, using gels and over-exposures to produce a saturated
Technicolor look, and optical (rather than digital) effects to achieve
smooth transitions.47 At one level, the carefully constructed mise-en-scène
serves as a reminder ‘that collective memory of the 1950s is [largely] a
product of media imagery – of advertising, of lush, widescreen, highly
coloured Hollywood movies, of early television and the sanitised family
fare promoted then’.48 But at another level, it demonstrates that mise-enscène is as crucial to the remaking of Sirkian melodrama as any narrative
line. This is nowhere better demonstrated than in Willis’s careful analysis
of Haynes’s film. For instance, Willis draws attention to ‘the primary
importance of colour to the genre [of melodrama], as Sirk handles it’,
arguing that Cathy’s signature lavender scarf is ‘a key signifier in the film’s
metonymic and figural economies’.49 In a scene in which three of Cathy’s
142
Far from Heaven (Todd Haynes, 2002). Courtesy Killer Films/
The Kobal Collection.
friends have come for lunch, the lavender scarf stands out against the
women’s outfits – ranging from warm reds through oranges to gold – that
otherwise are in harmony with the autumnal foliage: ‘these colours blend
with the foliage around them and create an exaggerated replica of a
common Sirk effect: by keying a woman’s clothing to the setting, Sirk
merges her into her environment’.50 As Willis goes on to point out, the
‘chromatic dissonance’ of Cathy’s scarf, here (and elsewhere in the film)
signals her transgression of the social order, in particular ‘her daring
expedition with Raymond into the public sphere where colour [as in
Fassbinder’s version] is also a central issue’.51
All That Heaven Allows not only remakes film history – revisiting the
narrative economy and moral structures of Sirkian mise-en-scène – but
(importantly, in assessing the significance of critical commentary in the
identification of remakes) recuperates some thirty years of feminist film
theory. When Fassbinder released his remake of All That Heaven Allows
it coincided with, and contributed to, a critical reassessment of Sirk’s
work. Although Sirk’s melodramas of the 1950s had proven popular with
contemporary audiences, they had been routinely dismissed by critics as
entertaining but trite ‘women’s pictures’. In the 1970s this perception
began to change, prompted by such events as the publication of Jon
Halliday’s book-length interview with Sirk (1971)52 and a retrospective at
143
the Edinburgh Film Festival (1972) that featured twenty Sirk films and
an English translation of Fassbinder’s essay-tribute (‘Six Films by
Douglas Sirk’) in the festival programme.53 From the early 1970s onward,
essays in feminist film theory adopted Sirk as a special example, reclaiming his films to open up new perspectives on the family melodrama and
insist upon the importance of issues of gender, domesticity and consumer
culture.54 Unlike Fassbinder’s remake, Haynes’s film revisits Sirk through
the filter of successive phases of film theory, prompting Willis to note that
‘Far From Heaven is as much a homage to film theory, and in particular
feminist film theory, as it is to Douglas Sirk’.55 In addition to the interpretative optic of feminist writing on melodrama, Mulvey points out that
gay critics and film makers (including Fassbinder and Haynes) ‘see a
camp subtext in [Sirk’s eight] films with Rock Hudson, in which double
entendre and ambiguous situations can be read as something other than
what they seem’.56 This is nowhere more evident than in Mark
Rappaport’s Rock Hudson’s Home Movies (1992), an ‘essay-film’ that
reframes sequences from some thirty of Hudson’s films to expose subtexts and provide self-understanding for current gay cultural production.
Understood in this context, those familiar with the Sirkian (sub)text
might see Far From Heaven as ‘filmed film criticism’.57 The Remembrance
programme does not bring all of these interests directly into focus, but
facilitates and encourages a critical and authorial understanding of
remaking.
Like genre, remakes are located in critical practice. As seen in the example
of Far from Heaven, remaking can be ‘usefully defined as a tool of critical
explanation’ and as a ‘powerful and reasoned way of justifying the value we
place or would place on a [text]’.58 Because of the transtextual nature of
remaking, this critical occasion or ‘viewing moment of [the remake]
becomes a junction between the textual evocation of the [original] and the
spectator’s memory of that [precursor]’.59 As Dan Harries points out (with
reference to parodic films), ‘one’s previous experience with the [original]
is typically needed in order both to sufficiently generate expectations based
on that [text] and to notice the discrepancies [or transformations] generated
from the [original]’.60 Harries acknowledges, though, that viewers will
come to a film with varying degrees of knowledge and that even parodies
(and sequels) which would seem to require a detailed intertextual knowledge of specific precursor texts are often naturalised according to generic
experience and discourses surrounding the film viewing. What this means
is that while it might be the case that a critical encounter is determined by
a viewer’s direct experience of a textual precursor, it is also true that one’s
144
memory of an original might derive not from an actual viewing but from a
‘generally circulated cultural memory’.61 Film criticism can contribute
substantially to the memory and recollection of the earlier film, and to
expectations surrounding the remake. Feature articles and detailed reviews
in academic film journals and film-dedicated publications (such as Sight
and Sound and Film Comment), assume that ‘the reader has, will or should
have seen the film’ under consideration,62 and ‘set out in the example of
their own critical practice a range of legitimate cultural activities to
perform in the reception of [the remake]’.63
Contributing more broadly to the identification and evaluation of
remakes are the (countless) journalistic reviews of film, video and DVD
releases found in mass-circulation newspapers, current affairs and lifestyle
magazines, music and home entertainment magazines, video store leaflets,
local television guides, Internet user-comments and film-by-film reference
guides such as Leonard Maltin’s Movie & Video Guide and Time Out Film
Guide. The following brief descriptions – drawn from the opening paragraphs of recent reviews in the US trade magazine Variety – demonstrate
the way in which remaking can be understood as a ‘classifying statement’.64
These descriptions help determine the viewer’s initial response to new
(often unfamiliar) texts, and contribute to ‘the priority we place on particular plot details, the meanings we ascribe to various textual features, the
expectations we form about likely story developments, our predictions
about its resolution, and our extrapolations about information not explicitly presented’:65
The Chinese-language Eat Drink Man Woman [has] an encore as an
Hispanic-American family comedy [Tortilla Soup].66
Largely listless and witless, this extensive reworking of the 1968 sci-fi
favourite [Planet of the Apes] simply isn’t very exciting or imaginative.67
An all-star remake of the all-star original, Ocean’s Eleven is a lark for everybody concerned, including the audience.68
A middling Tom Cruise vehicle as far as the general public is concerned,
Vanilla Sky will surprise buffs for being a virtual scene-by-scene remake of
the 1997 Spanish feature Open Your Eyes (Abre los ojos).69
A disgraced soccer star trains a motley bunch of convicts in Mean Machine,
a British makeover of Robert Aldrich’s 1974 The Longest Yard that’s okay
entertainment but nothing more.70
Although Norman Jewison’s stolidly grim and ultimately ludicrous 1975
original [Rollerball] was hardly a landmark of nightmarish sci-fi, it towers
over this . . . picture that John McTiernan has remade.71
145
The central commercial elements of time travel, flashy effects, monster
villains, star Guy Pearce and boomer nostalgia for the 1960 George Pal
version [of The Time Machine] will probably spur solid [box-office] at home
and abroad.72
This refitting [Unfaithful] of Claude Chabrol’s 1968 classic La femme infidele
is less concerned with suspense and dramatic fireworks than is the usual
American ‘erotic thriller’.73
The Good Thief . . . audaciously retool[s] Jean-Pierre Melville’s 1955 French
heist thriller-cum-character study Bob le flambeur as a cluttered, crowd
pleasing multinational caper movie.74
The Ring is a stylish Hollywood remake of the Japanese horror sensation that
unfortunately has little personality of its own.75
[Jonathan Demme] display[s] considerable chutzpah merely in choosing to
remake as elegant and inimitable an entertainment as Charade [in] The Truth
About Charlie.76
A sci-fi entry in name only, this second screen version of Stanislaw Lem’s
novel [Solaris] is technically superb and features a strong, serious performance by George Clooney.77
Proponents of the studios’ recent penchant for remakes of beloved pics have
strong defense in The Italian Job . . . This new Job [is] a generally better
movie than the satisfying 1969 caper starring Michael Caine.78
The Texas Chainsaw Massacre is an initially promising, but quickly disappointing retread of Tobe Hooper and Kim Henkel’s highly influential horror
classic.79
Hell overflows – again – in Dawn of the Dead, a big-budget redo of George
A. Romero’s influential 1978 gorefest, . . . one of the best films (horror or
otherwise) of the 70s.80
By definition, remakes rework an earlier film (or films), but viewers are
not necessarily assumed to have, nor do they require, any familiarity with
these prototexts. Remakes are generated by a variety of sources – some
visible, others obscure. Audiences come to the new versions with varying
degrees of knowledge and expectation: those who have never heard of
the original, those who have heard of it but not seen it, those who have
seen it but don’t remember it, and those who have a detailed knowledge
of it.81 In recognition of the fact that audiences are multiple and diverse,
each of the above reviews carries, in the first instance, a generic
classification: Tortilla Soup is ‘family comedy’, Ocean’s Eleven is ‘lightweight caper’, Rollerball is ‘nightmarish sci-fi’, Unfaithful is ‘erotic
146
thriller’, and so on. Viewers who fail to recognise, or know little about,
an original text may understand a new version (a remake) through its
reinscription of generic elements, taking the genre as a whole (rather
than a particular example of it) as the film’s intertextual base. For
instance, the producers of The Texas Chainsaw Massacre say that the idea
of remaking the seminal slasher movie was in part motivated by research
showing that 90 per cent of the film’s anticipated core audience (eighteen to twenty-four year old males) knew the title of Tobe Hooper’s original but had never seen it.82 These audience members might take to the
screening no more than a general description of the original – a group of
teenagers is terrorised by a cannibal family led by the chainsaw-wielding
Leatherface – and view the remake as part of a cycle of contemporary
‘meat movies’ that includes Wrong Turn (Rob Schmidt, 2002), Cabin
Fever (Eli Roth, 2002) and Tobe Hooper’s 2003 remake of The Toolbox
Murders (Dennis Donnelly, 1978). Moreover, in addition to framing
remakes as genre texts and/or drawing comparisons to specific generic
intertexts presumed to be closer to the contemporary viewer’s experience than some (temporally or geographically) distant original, film
reviews will typically position the remake as a vehicle for a star performer
or auteur filmmaker. In this case, the Mr Deeds remake (Steven Brill,
2002; Mr Deeds Goes to Town, Frank Capra, 1936) is first of all an ‘Adam
Sandler vehicle’; the Eddie Murphy version of Doctor Dolittle (Betty
Thomas, 1998; Richard Fleischer, 1967) is best read alongside Murphy’s
remake of The Nutty Professor (Tom Shadyac, 1996; Jerry Lewis, 1963);83
You’ve Got Mail (Nora Ephron, 1998; The Shop Around the Corner,
Ernst Lubitsch, 1940) is foremost an opportunity to reunite stars Tom
Hanks and Meg Ryan from Sleepless in Seattle (Nora Ephron, 1993);84
and for Ocean’s Eleven ‘Soderbergh has assembled a cast list that reads
like a Who’s Who of People magazine’s Sexiest Men Alive: George
Clooney, Brad Pitt, Matt Damon, and Andy Garcia. And as the Girl
there’s the biggest star of them all, Julia Roberts’.85 Similarly, The Good
Thief provides room for director Neil Jordan to explore ‘his ongoing
themes of honour, identity and faith among fringe dwellers’;86 Steven
Soderbergh takes Solaris in a ‘more personal direction to make it something close to “Scenes From a Marriage in Outer Space” ’;87 and Planet
of the Apes is ‘a Tim Burton film’, an occasion for the director of cult
properties like Batman (1989), Edward Scissorhands (1990), Ed Wood
(1994) and Sleepy Hollow (1999) to pursue his interest in ‘bizarre reversals and the blurring of primitive and civilised behaviour’.88
In the above examples the general repetitions of generic patterns and
exclusive stars (actors/directors) help frame the interpretative horizon
147
(narrative image) for those viewers with little experience with, or recollection of, a precursor text. But equally, the string of (remake) euphemisms that
attends the description of these films – encore, reworking, refitting, retooling,
retread, redo, makeover, new version – encourages some viewers to place the
remake within the generic category of ‘remaking’ and adopt (to some degree)
a transtextual reading of the film. This may have the effect of inviting
viewers to restrict attention to the comparison of particular elements or
details, or abandon broader generic or cultural analysis as a means of establishing the film’s contemporary meaning and value.89 For instance, an analysis of The Truth About Charlie, a film whose original’s (Charade) reputation
is maintained principally for the way its lead players (Audrey Hepburn, Cary
Grant) inhabit their roles, typically leads to the assessment that the new
actors (Thandie Newton, Mark Wahlberg) can only approximate this ‘inimitable screen charisma’.90 In a similar way, reviewers of the Dawn of the Dead
remake bemoan the fact that Snyder uses the shopping mall as a location, but
not additionally (as Romero had) as an occasion to critique consumer culture
by drawing parallels between mall shoppers and zombies. This in turn leads
to reviewers devaluing such (worthwhile) features as the remake’s hightension opening (used in its entirety as a trailer for the film) and the innovative end credit sequence – a video diary – that provides a capsule account of
the fate of the survivors. More generally, this contributes to the assessment
that (in its remakings) Hollywood has become ‘more skilful’ but ‘less daring’
over the past twenty-five years.91 And finally (in a different way), the remake
of Planet of the Apes consistently drew comments around Tim Burton’s
reworking of the original’s famous ending in which Taylor (Charlton
Heston) discovers the ruins of the Statue of Liberty. As described in
Chapter 3, the Burton ending – which befuddled many viewers – makes
perfect sense when ‘reframed’ as a remaking.
All of this suggests that review comments do not simply label or ‘describe
the knowledge’ that films are remakes, but ‘in a very practical sense . . .
determine that knowledge’.92 As described above, a filmgoer who is unfamiliar with the title and detail of an original source (and its remakes) will
not recognise any specific intertextual cues, and yet (as Grant points out
with reference to ‘free’ adaptations):
The likelihood of such an unknowing spectator seeing the film without first
having been alerted to the film’s status [as remake] by its intertextual relay is
small. Even if spectators initially do not share . . . the generally circulated
cultural memory of the film’s intertext, their experience of viewing [the
remake] will be shaped by the widely circulated discourses ascribing it to the
subgenre of the [film remake].93
148
Alongside of other textual activators (paratextual elements), the film
reviewer’s identification of a film as remake thus encourages or even ‘forces
[viewers] to read in a different way’.94 In other words, it occasions an interpretative shift, creating a horizon of expectations that at once enables and
limits spectatorial response: opening up some meanings, closing down
others. No textual or historical account of remaking can be complete
without attention to these, and other, epitextual zones of remaking.
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 57.
Jenkins, ‘Reception Theory and Audience Research’, p. 169.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 17. See also Harries, Film Parody, pp. 101–19.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 18.
Ibid.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 84.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 31.
Ibid., p. 39. See Ellis, Visible Fictions, p. 30.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 39.
Macksey, ‘Foreword’, p. xviii.
Stam, ‘Beyond Fidelity’, p. 65.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 58.
Stam, ‘Beyond Fidelity’, p. 65.
Ibid.
VHS package, I Died a Thousand Times, Warner Home Video, 1991.
DVD jacket, King Kong, Paramount, Region 1 DVD, 1999.
Harries, Film Parody, p. 118.
The Sunday Age, 28 March 1999.
http://www.meetjoeblack.com/.
http://www.sweetnovember.net/index_noflash.html.
http://www.vanillasky.com/flash_site/index.html.
http://dontcloseyoureyes.warnerbros.com/.
http://www.italianjobmovie.com/flash/index.html.
http://www.dawnofthedeadmovie.net/.
The Italian Job, Paramount, Region 4 DVD, 2003.
See Romney, ‘Future Soul’, p. 14.
Johnson and Petrie, The Films of Andrei Tarkovsky, pp. 98–110.
See Johnson and Petrie, ‘Ethical Exploration’, pp. 17–18; and Taubin, ‘Steven
Soderbergh Follows Andrei Tarkovsky into Space’, p. 22.
Solaris, 20th Century Fox, Region 4 DVD, 2003.
The Internet Movie Database, imdb.com
Wrathall, ‘Rev. of Insomnia’, pp. 62–4.
http://www.criterionco.com/asp/.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
72.
73.
74.
75.
149
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 58.
Remembrance Cinema Program.
Mulvey, ‘Notes on Sirk and Melodrama’, p. 56.
Fassbinder, ‘Imitation of Life’, p. 78.
Mulvey, ‘All That Heaven Allows’.
Reimer, ‘Comparison of All That Heaven Allows and Ali: Fear Eats the Soul’,
p. 282.
Mulvey, ‘Notes on Sirk and Melodrama’, p. 54.
Taubin, ‘In Every Dream Home’, p. 22.
Falcon, ‘Magnificent Obsession’, p. 12.
Willis, ‘The Politics of Disappointment’, p. 131.
Ibid., p. 132.
Mulvey, ‘Rev. of Far From Heaven’, p. 41.
Pulleine, ‘Stahl into Sirk’, p. 236.
Hoberman, ‘Sign of the Times’.
Silberg, ‘A Scandal in Suburbia’, p. 56.
Mulvey, ‘Rev. of Far From Heaven’, p. 40.
Willis, ‘The Politics of Disappointment’, pp. 148–9.
Ibid., p. 149.
Ibid., p. 150, emphasis added.
Halliday, Sirk on Sirk.
Rpt. as Fassbinder, ‘Imitation of Life’.
Neale, Genre and Hollywood, p. 184.
Willis, ‘The Politics of Disappointment’, p. 134.
Mulvey, ‘All That Heaven Allows’.
Hoberman, ‘Sign of the Times’.
Adena Rosmarin, quoted in Altman, Film/Genre, p. 85.
Harries, Film Parody, p. 108.
Ibid.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 57.
Morris, ‘Indigestion: A Rhetoric of Reviewing’, p. 118.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 70.
Rosmarin, quoted in Altman, Film/Genre, p. 85.
Jenkins, ‘Reception Theory and Audience Research’, pp. 170–1.
Eisner, ‘Rev. of Tortilla Soup’, p. 19.
McCarthy, ‘Fox Wages Gorilla Warfare on B.O. with Apes Redo’, p. 17.
McCarthy, ‘Breezy Ocean’s Could Make Splash in B.O. Pool’, p. 33.
McCarthy, ‘Rev. of Vanilla Sky’, p. 32.
Elley, ‘Rev. of Mean Machine’, p. 22.
Koehler, ‘Rev. of Rollerball’, p. 41.
McCarthy, ‘Time Machine Hits Snag in Distant Future’, p. 31.
McCarthy, ‘Lyne’s Cool Unfaithful May Warm Up Fox’s B.O.’, p. 41.
Cockrell, ‘Good Thief’s Good Bet’, p. 28.
McCarthy, ‘Remake of Japan Horror Pic Sounds a Tinny Ring’, p. 21.
150
76.
77.
78.
79.
80.
81.
82.
83.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
89.
90.
91.
92.
93.
94.
McCarthy, ‘Stylish Charade Redo Pushes the Truth’, p. 31.
McCarthy, ‘Clooney’s Star Shines in Soderbergh Solaris’, p. 22.
Koehler, ‘Jazzy Job Works as Classy Caper’, p. 42.
Foundas, ‘Rev. of The Texas Chainsaw Massacre’, p. 41.
Foundas, ‘Rev. of Dawn of the Dead’, p. 39.
Leitch, ‘Twice-Told Tales’, pp. 139–40.
Foundas, ‘Rev. of The Texas Chainsaw Massacre’, p. 41.
O’Sullivan, ‘Rev. of Dr. Dolittle’, p. 38.
Maslin, ‘hanks&ryan@romance.com’, p. E.1:1.
Mitchell, ‘For the New Rat Pack. It’s a Ring-a-Ding Thing’, p. E.1:1.
Cockrell, ‘Good Thief’s Good Bet’, p. 28.
McCarthy, ‘Clooney’s Star Shines in Soderbergh Solaris’, p. 22.
Desowitz, ‘New Apes, New Planet, Old Story: Simians Still Rule’, p. 2A.3.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 95.
O’Hehir, ‘Rev. of The Truth About Charlie’.
Ebert, ‘Rev. of Dawn of the Dead’.
Grant, ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail’, p. 69.
Ibid.
Horton and McDougal, ‘Introduction’, p. 2.
CHAPTER 6
Discourse
Peter Wollen describes the film canon – the great works of cinema – as
something in ‘constant flux . . . [with] marginal adjustments being made
all the time . . . through a complex process of cultural negotiation among
a motley set of cultural gate-keepers’.1 Wollen lists four key agencies or
projects that contribute to the process of canon formation. The first of
these is the archives and cinematheques that ‘decide which films to
preserve and, through their film programming policy, which to screen’.2
Wollen notes collections such as the ‘National Treasures’ list of American
films decided annually by the Library of Congress (Washington, DC), and
the selection of world cinema that makes up the ‘360° Pan’ list of the
‘Treasures from the National Archive’ in London. (The latter includes
several films discussed in this chapter: Gun Crazy, Bob le flambeur, A bout
de souffle, Pierrot le fou, Le Samouraï, Bonnie and Clyde.) Second to
the archive, Wollen places the role of academics and critics, singling out the
Sight and Sound lists of ‘Top Ten’ films drawn up every decade (since the
1950s) which serve ‘as a record and summation of international critical
opinion’ and influence public taste for the decade to come.3 The next
contributing agency is the part played by filmmakers, and includes their
appreciation of ‘the ambitiousness or originality of other people’s projects,
as well as filmmakers’ wish to place their own work within a historical
tradition or pay their debt to people who influenced them’.4 In the latter
instance, dues are paid through various modes and degrees of remaking –
quotation, allusion, adaptation. Cinephile directors – from Jean-Luc
Godard, through Martin Scorsese and Paul Schrader, to Quentin
Tarantino – expatiate at length, in interviews and on camera, on the ‘great
films’ and on their homages and tributes to film history. Critics in turn
comment upon this ‘intra-filmic network of influences . . . [making] the
work of one filmmaker seem crucial in understanding the work of another,
who in turn . . . and so on’.5 This then feeds back into the audience to make
152
up the fourth and final contributing project: namely, the role played by
film-buffs and cultists, that ‘special sub-group of spectators who feel especially enthusiastic about one genre, one director or even one favourite
film’.6 This agency is compounded by the fact that critics and filmmakers
can emerge from the ranks of cultists. For instance, Jack Smith’s ruinous
remakings of exotic Hollywood adventure movies in films such as Blonde
Cobra (Ken Jacobs, 1959–63) and Flaming Creatures (1963) are grounded
in his cultist appreciation of a group of ‘secret flix’.7 The same can be said
of the critics-turned-filmmakers at Cahiers du cinéma, in particular the
reworking of Hollywood genres in films such as Jean-Luc Godard’s A bout
de souffle (Breathless, 1960) and François Truffaut’s Tirez sur le pianiste
(Shoot the Piano Player, 1960). Godard acknowledges just this when, in
speaking of the early work of the nouvelle vague, he says:
Our first films were all films de cinéphile – the work of film enthusiasts. One
can make use of what one has already seen in the cinema to make deliberate
references. This was true of me in particular . . . For some shots I referred
to scenes I remembered from [Otto] Preminger, [George] Cukor, etc. And
the character played by Jean Seberg [in A bout de souffle] was a continuation
of her role in Bonjour Tristesse [1958]. I could have taken the last shot of
Preminger’s film and started after dissolving to a title, ‘Three Years Later’.8
Godard’s first feature, A bout de souffle, was – and continues to be – one
of the most influential films of the nouvelle vague and a cornerstone of the
film canon. In A bout de souffle, Godard’s cinephilia manifested itself as a
penchant for homage and quotation, invoking (in Michel and Patricia)
the crazy love (l’amour fou) of classic noirs: You Only Live Once (1937),
They Live by Night (1948) and Gun Crazy (1950). Five years later,
Godard ‘revisited’ the outlaw couple in a kind of sequel, Pierrot le fou
(1965), and A bout de souffle – its precursors and its progeny – have in turn
been ‘re-made in USA’ in films such as Bonnie and Clyde (1967) and
Breathless (Jim McBride, 1983). This chapter looks at the role that a
canonised body of film work plays in the motivation, recognition and
understanding of the circuits of remaking sketched among these (and
other) films. As Rick Altman’s work on genre makes clear, our ‘primary
knowledge’ of films and film remakes ‘comes . . . from our culture’s commitment to comment on and conserve cinema’.9 As seen in Chapter 5,
critics and reviewers discuss remakes in relation to their originals,
but only in those cases where the earlier films continue to circulate
through the efforts of cultural taste-keepers (aesthetes, educators)
and the agency of archives and distributors. Although television (broadcast, cable) and information storage technologies (VHS, DVD) have
153
contributed to the number of films memorialised in personal archives, it is
nonetheless the case that only a small fraction of world cinema output
is seen, let alone remembered, beyond its initial appearance. More than
this, in addition to ‘the visible face of the canon’ – publications, archives,
home-video libraries – there is also ‘a largely invisible cultural structure
that underpins it: a tissue of quotations, linkages, assumptions and ultimately memories’.10 This chapter attests ultimately not only to the actual
machinery of the canon, but also to the virtual ‘recollection images’ – or
mnemosigns11 – of its remaking.
In the late 1960s, the ‘new Hollywood’ produced Bonnie and Clyde, a film
that became a ‘cultural phenomenon’: exciting a youthful generation of
cinema-goers, revising cultural attitudes toward the depiction of violence,
stimulating a trend toward 1930s’ fashions and earning more than
$22 million at the US domestic box-office (on an estimated budget of
$2.5 million).12 The film arose from a complex junction of historical and
cultural forces, including:
1. the reality and myth of the outlaw couple, Bonnie Parker and Clyde
Barrow, whose exploits in the early 1930s had received extensive media
coverage in the South and mid-West;
2. an American genre tradition of gangster films, outlaw Westerns and
road movies of the 1930s onward;
3. the reworking of selected examples from this group of films by French
New Wave directors of the late 1950s and early 1960s;
4. a contemporary socio-cultural milieu, moulded by the assassination of
John F. Kennedy and US involvement in the Vietnam War; and
5. the emergence of the ‘new Hollywood’ out of the collapse of the studio
system, the disintegration of the Production Code and the film industry’s increasing coming to terms with a diversified and globalised media
landscape.
As Robert Ray points out, Bonnie and Clyde was a film whose appeal
derived from its ostensible break with the classical Hollywood cinema (the
‘old Hollywood’), a film that begins in imitation of Godard’s A bout de
souffle ‘with a distorting succession of fragments, withholding the customary establishing shot until the sequence’s tenth take’.13
In 1964, Bonnie and Clyde screenwriters, David Newman and Robert
Benton, were working as editor and art director (respectively) for Esquire
magazine in New York. Looking back on the development of the Bonnie and
Clyde project they said: ‘At that time . . . we were riding the crest of the new
154
wave that had swept in on our minds, and the talk was Truffaut, Godard, De
Broca, Bergman, Kurosawa, Antonioni, Fellini and all the other names that
fell like a litany’.14 Newman and Benton acknowledge not only these
‘modernist’ auteurs and the concurrent creation of a group of American
auteurs – Alfred Hitchcock, John Ford, Howard Hawks, Orson Welles – but
they specifically single out a particular film: ‘our minds [had] most recently
[been] blown by Breathless, [and] we addressed ourselves more and more . . .
to the idea of actually doing something about it. And the first idea . . . was a
movie about two Texas desperados named Bonnie Parker and Clyde
Barrow’.15 More particularly, the two writers situate the genesis of Bonnie
and Clyde in three factors:
1. a kind of Zeitgeist (or spirit of the period) that they labelled, in their
Esquire essay of the same title, ‘the new sentimentality’;
2. a new book by John Toland, titled The Dillinger Days, that provided a
history of the notorious John Dillinger gang, with footnotes concerning
Depression-era contemporaries Bonnie and Clyde;
3. an Alfred Hitchcock retrospective at the Museum of Modern Art which
gave them an ‘education in pure cinema’.16
Of Hitchcock’s importance, Newman and Benton say: ‘Bonnie and Clyde is
loaded with its influences [its debt to other films and filmmakers], and
some may be more apparent than Hitchcock, but there wasn’t a day spent
in writing that didn’t include at least one discussion on what he would have
done’.17
Despite locating their motivation in the work of Godard and Hitchcock,
Newman and Benton note that the ‘heaviest influence’ as they actually
wrote the screenplay for Bonnie and Clyde was François Truffaut, especially
two films: Shoot the Piano Player (1960), with its ‘comedy and bleakness,
gangsterism and humanity’; and Jules et Jim (1963), ‘which managed to
define the present as it evoked the past’.18 Newman and Benton – at that
time, unknown and untried screenwriters – took their enthusiasm for these
two films to the extreme, attempting to interest Truffaut himself in directing the film. But first, the screenwriters immersed themselves in historical
accounts drawn from various sources (ranging from old newspapers to true
detective magazines) of the life and times of Bonnie and Clyde. They found
that early 1930s America had seen, and enjoyed, the revival of crime and an
outlaw style that had not been around since the days of the old West. The
prohibition era and organised crime of the 1920s gave way to the
Depression and with it came a different kind of criminal, one who was
strange and exotic – a kind of desperado. Among the factors contributing to
155
this shift (and ultimately influencing the structure of the completed film)
were 1930s developments in mechanised transport. Fast cars and smooth
interstate highways meant that ‘a bandit could rob a bank in one state, drive
like hell, and be two hundred miles away from the scene of the crime by
night’.19 Additionally, the proliferation of print and radio technologies
ensured that the exploits of the Barrow gang were not only well known
across the country, but (especially in Texas) were exaggerated and sensationalised in media reportage.20 As Timothy Corrigan puts it, filtered
through intense media scrutiny (and a 1960s sensibility), ‘Bonnie and Clyde
[become] road rebels as odd heroes whose travels are a media tour of meaningless violence . . . All experience becomes the mechanical reproduction
of the road through a real or metaphoric windshield’.21
A month after Newman and Benton had finished the writing, François
Truffaut arrived in New York with a copy of their script treatment (translated into French) and made suggestions for revising and transforming the
scenario. As Matthew Bernstein points out, the script drafts that Newman
and Benton had prepared up to that point ‘already emulated the French
new wave’. What is less well known is that Truffaut’s input did not open
‘the film up to more playful, disparate elements à la Shoot the Piano Player’,
but (if anything) gave the ‘treatment stronger dramatic shape, [and]
pushed the film toward a more conventional dramaturgy’.22 As it turned
out, Truffaut was unable to follow through with the film (having committed to the filming of an adaptation of Ray Bradbury’s Fahrenheit 451), but
he took the liberty of passing the project on to Jean-Luc Godard. Like
Truffaut, Godard expressed interest, but as Newman and Benton describe
it, the ‘mercurial, impulsive, rash, brilliant’ Godard was considered too
much of a risk by the film’s producers.23 The project languished before
(almost two years later) Truffaut brought it to the attention of actor Warren
Beatty, who subsequently purchased the script (as executive producer),
acquired the services of director Arthur Penn and later negotiated a production deal with Warner Brothers. On a final note, Newman and Benton
say that Truffaut’s one other significant contribution was the (cinéphile)
suggestion of screening ‘a few movies that seemed relevant’. ‘One evening’,
say Newman and Benton, ‘we found ourselves in a projection room looking
at Joseph Lewis’s Gun Crazy, a film based on the Bonnie and Clyde
legend’.24
Along with Bonnie and Clyde, You Only Live Once (Fritz Lang, 1937) and
They Live by Night (Nicholas Ray, 1949), Gun Crazy (1950) is now
considered one of the four canonised or ‘great renditions’ of the Bonnie
and Clyde tale.25 The first of these, You Only Live Once appeared just a few
156
years after Bonnie and Clyde’s violent deaths (in 1934). Although it is not
a ‘direct’ recreation of the Bonnie and Clyde story, it incorporates a
number of features from their life and times to tell the tragic tale of smalltime criminal Eddie Taylor (Henry Fonda) and his girl, Joan Graham
(Sylvia Sidney), on the run from the law. They Live by Night, based on
Edward Anderson’s 1949 novel Thieves Like Us, is a similarly framed,
sensitive rendering of the flight of two doomed criminal-lovers, ‘Bowie’
(Farley Granger) and ‘Keechie’ (Cathy O’Donnell). Where Robert
Altman’s 1974 remake, Thieves Like Us, is seen as a detached piece of genre
revisionism, They Live by Night is ‘notably warm-blooded, a romantic fable
about two young lovers adrift in a world they did not create’.26 By contrast,
John Treherne documents the case of Persons in Hiding (Louis King, 1939),
a film only loosely related to Bonnie and Clyde, but based on a book
produced by Edgar J. Hoover to counter the kind of sympathetic portrayal
of criminals found in films like You Only Live Once.27 In this version,
Dorothy Bronson (Patricia Morison) is a discontented hairdresser who
teams up with small-time criminal Freddie Martin (J. Carrol Naish).
Carlos Clarens describes the (now) rarely screened Persons in Hiding as a
‘little B-film, with . . . B-film ambitions [that] could not quite suppress the
romantic aspect of an outlaw couple . . . This was surely the way
Americans thought about Bonnie and Clyde in the thirties – as picturesque
but unglamorous second-raters’.28
The first film to directly deal with the historical characters of Bonnie
and Clyde was The Bonnie Parker Story (William Witney, 1958), a drivein feature with television’s Dorothy Provine playing Bonnie Parker (in the
words of the film’s tag-line) as a ‘Cigar Smoking Hellcat of the Roaring
Thirties’. But the film most often cited as a direct precursor to Penn’s
version is Joseph H. Lewis’s classic film noir, Gun Crazy. Produced by
entrepreneurs Frank and Maurice King and initially released in January
1950 as Deadly is the Female, Gun Crazy was re-released six months later
under the title of its source material, a Saturday Evening Post short story
by MacKinlay Kantor. Neglected for many years, Gun Crazy was rediscovered in 1967 (the release year of Bonnie and Clyde) and continued to
maintain focus as critical interest grew in film noir and in Lewis as B-movie
auteur.29 In this tale of lovers-on-the-run, the main characters – Barton
Tare (John Dall) and Annie Laurie Starr (Peggy Cummins) – are ‘essential, elemental, driven, diagrammatic beings . . . defined by their extreme
emotional relation, and reaction, to guns’.30 Gun Crazy now occupies
a ‘pivotal place in the distinguished company of the fugitive-couple narrative cycle’ that leads to Bonnie and Clyde. But where other renditions –
Lang’s Depression-era You Only Live Once and Ray’s moody They Live
157
By Night – see their protagonists as innocent victims, ‘the King Brothers
were clearly more interested in the greater commercial potential gained by
centring the romantic narrative on rebellious characters who actively
choose to be criminals’.31 As Jim Kitses notes, ‘it is . . . this radical shift in
moral weight that gives [Gun Crazy] its hard edge, and thereafter informs
Bonnie and Clyde and its own offspring’.32 The cycle of films spawned by
Bonnie and Clyde includes titles such as Badlands (Terrence Malick, 1973),
Sugarland Express (Steven Spielberg, 1974) and Thieves Like Us,33 and
(later) Guncrazy (Tamra Davis, 1992), Natural Born Killers (Oliver Stone,
1994) and Jim McBride’s Breathless remake (1983).
Like Bonnie and Clyde, Gun Crazy has been described as a ‘quintessentially American film’.34 This is not only because of its rendering of
American film genres – Hollywood romance, crime picture, road movie,
film noir – but also for the fact that ‘in noir, all of America is gun-crazy, the
inevitable dark-side effect of a ferociously aggressive patriarchal capitalism
fuelled by a violent national history and ideology’.35 More than this, Kitses
states that ‘the up-and-down emotional world of Gun Crazy, its rollercoaster trajectory, [is] expressed through the dominant motifs . . . of speed
and circularity that organise the film’.36 Like the later Bonnie and Clyde,
‘the high-speed getaways, together with the scenes of the couple in transit,
shape Gun Crazy as a road movie, the constant movement and furious
action a graphic expression of their nomadic life together and its illicit
pursuit of happiness’.37 The centrality of the automobile in Gun Crazy is
especially compelling in the three-and-a-half minute, sequence-shot that
famously documents the couple’s Hampton Building and Loan robbery
from a fixed position in the back seat of their stolen Cadillac. Even more
impressive, though, is the scene (a turning point in the film’s narrative)
following the robbery at the Armour meat-packing plant in Albuquerque.
As they have previously arranged, Bart and Laurie end up in separate
getaway cars and start off in opposite directions along the same road. But
a short way along they simultaneously brake, wheel their cars around, and
meet each other in the middle of the two-lane road. Kitses describes the
180-degree turns of Bart and Laurie’s cars as ‘a triumph of mise-en-scène,
[a] moment [that] wittily marks the summit of the couple’s passionate
commitment to each other in vehicular terms’. ‘What’, asks Kitses, ‘could
be more American?’38
It is these scenes of movement and action in Gun Crazy that not only offer
the audience a dynamic, emotional experience, but express ‘a way of life, a
modus operandi, ultimately a philosophical system’.39 As Kitses notes, we see
in the film’s energy ‘the model in action, and of action, that so attracted
Godard and his nouvelle vague compatriots to the American cinema and its
158
genres’.40 It is important to remember too that when journalist Françoise
Giroud coined the phrase ‘nouvelle vague’ for weekly news magazine
L’Express in 1957 she was describing a youth phenomenon – a movement.41
Emerging from this moment, the young iconoclast Godard, seemed to
recognise in American cars and movies shared qualities – ‘movement, image,
mechanisation’ – for the ‘transformation in [outmoded] European consumption patterns and cultural habits’.42 Along with the notion of l’amour
fou – a theme that enabled Godard to describe his own relationship with the
cinema as both lover and satirist43 – it is this vitality that ‘drives’ the representations of A bout de souffle and the later Pierrot le fou.44 For instance, of an
early, stylised sequence from Pierrot le fou that shows ‘outlaw couple’
Ferdinand and Marianne in a car with coloured (studio) lights sweeping over
the windscreen, Godard said:
When you drive in Paris at night, what do you see? Red, green, yellow lights.
I wanted to show these elements but without necessarily placing them as they
are in reality. Rather . . . I wanted to recreate a sensation through the elements
which constitute it.45
In the earlier A bout de souffle, this dynamism is inscribed at the very outset
in the (transgressive) spatial and graphic continuity – the jump cuts and
mismatched shots – of Michel behind the wheel of a stolen 1950
Oldsmobile convertible on the Nationale 7 highway. In Godard’s brand of
Americanism, the cinema and automobile become ‘a vehicle . . . [for] introspection and transformation’.46
Of his debut feature A bout de souffle, Godard said ‘What I wanted was to
take a conventional story and remake, but differently, everything the cinema
had done’.47 Throughout the 1950s, Godard and fellow cinéphile critics at
Cahiers du cinéma – notably Claude Chabrol, Jacques Rivette, Eric Rohmer
and François Truffaut – had re-written the American cinema, advancing a
theory of film authorship (la politique des auteurs) and employing the principles of mise-en-scène criticism in their re-evaluation of genre-based,
Hollywood studio films. Their brand of auteur criticism involved not just
the detection of individual style, but (more controversially) was developed
in relation to the work of American filmmakers – such as Samuel Fuller,
Alfred Hitchcock and Howard Hawks – who were working in the controlled environment of the Hollywood studio system. For the Cahiers
critics, the best Hollywood directors would exhibit, over a period of time,
a recognisable stylistic and thematic personality. But because these
filmmakers often had little control over subject matter, script and dialogue,
all evidence of this personal signature had to be found in the mise-en-scène,
159
in ‘the visual orchestration of the story, the rhythm of the action, the
plasticity and dynamism of the image’.48 By the end of the 1950s, the
Cahiers critics had put their theory into practice, reinventing the cinema as
a mode of self-expression in films such as The 400 Blows (Les quatre cents
coups, François Truffaut, 1958), Les cousins (Claude Chabrol, 1959) and
Hiroshima mon amour (Alain Resnais, 1959). One of the last of the group to
embark on a feature film, Godard described A bout de souffle as the
culmination of a ‘decade’s worth of making movies in my head’.49
Godard shot A bout de souffle across the summer of 1959 on location in
Paris and Marseilles for the cost of around 40 million francs (about half the
average budget for the period).50 Developed from a scenario by Truffaut
(with Godard taking responsibility for the dialogue), A bout de souffle
reworks the conventions – in particular the motifs of pursuit and entrapment – of the quintessential American B-movie film noir. The basic story –
that of a fugitive on the run – follows the misadventures of a petty car thief,
Michel Poiccard (played by Jean-Paul Belmondo). After killing a motorcycle policeman, Michel makes for Paris where he looks up a former girlfriend, an American student, Patricia Franchini (Jean Seberg). Michel
convinces Patricia to flee with him to Italy, but she changes her mind and
reports him to the authorities. Finally, as a result of Patricia’s betrayal,
Michel is shot by the police. Though the plot is unremarkable, Breathless
captures the vitality – the movement and energy – of American film noir
through the stylistic innovation of its mise-en-scène. Godard, and cinematographer Raoul Coutard, rejected the machinery of studio production
and shadowy look of classic noir for documentary-style location shooting,
including the use of hand-held cameras and natural light. In the editing
room, Godard constructed an elliptical, fragmented narrative. He violated
the codes of classical continuity and dramaturgy, contrasting the rapid
editing and jump cuts of the film’s opening sequence (on the Nationale
7 highway) to the use of lengthy tracking shots, evident in Michel and
Patricia’s walk along the Champs-Elysées.51
Beginning with a dedication to the Hollywood B-movie studio,
Monogram Pictures, A bout de souffle adopts a self-conscious attitude to its
reworking of film noir and American B-movies generally. Godard says he
set out to make ‘an ordinary gangster film’,52 and Dudley Andrew points
out that ‘Godard packed his film with direct and glancing citations to this
genre’.53 These references included allusions to such films as The Harder
They Fall (Mark Robson, 1956), Ten Seconds to Hell (Robert Aldrich,
1959), Whirlpool (Otto Preminger, 1949) and The Enforcer (Bretaigne
Windust, 1951), and Michel models himself – through the imitation of a
particular gesture – after noir tough-guy, Humphrey Bogart. The two
160
come together in a short (six-shot) sequence of Michel outside a movie
theatre displaying a poster for The Harder They Fall. Michel mutters
‘Bogey’, and there follows a shot/reverse-shot sequence of Michel ‘identifying’ with (a lobby card of) Bogart. Godard himself readily pointed out
some of the more obscure references, stating (for instance) that Patricia’s
look at Michel through a rolled-up poster, and dissolve to a kiss is a direct
quotation from Samuel Fuller’s Forty Guns (1957).54 Godard reviewed the
Fuller Western for Cahiers du cinéma two years earlier and had described
in detail the scene recreated in A bout de souffle:
Gene Barry is courting ravishing young Eve Brent . . . Eve sells guns.
Jokingly, Gene aims at her. The camera takes his place and we see Eve
through the barrel of the gun. Track forward until she is framed in close-up
by the mouth of the barrel. Next shot: they are in a kiss.55
In addition to these ‘direct citations’, A bout de souffle is characterised by its
‘general “film noir tone” ’.56 For example, Andrew states that Michel’s plan
to flee to Italy with Patricia ‘recalls the “escape over the border” dreams of
so many forties’ anti-heroes, like the fated couple of Gun Crazy’.57
Additionally, Andrew suggests that the celebrated sequence-shot that
depicts Bart and Laurie’s hold-up of Hampton Building and Loan ‘may
well have inspired’ Godard, and that Michel’s anecdote about a guy who
pulls a robbery in order to impress his girl ‘seems to rewrite Gun Crazy,
for that couple too goes deeper into crime as their love grows’.58 Michel not
only invokes the ‘driven heroes’ of Raoul Walsh films like High Sierra
(1941) and its remake Colorado Territory (1949), but A bout de souffle’s
‘dramatic flow unmistakably recalls a whole battery of films, all of whose
doomed and passionate couples [in the words of the Ten Seconds to Hell
poster “quoted” by Godard] “live dangerously until to the end” ’.59 This
assessment is consistent with James Naremore’s assertion that, as auteur
critic-come-filmmaker, Godard held a (surrealist-like) disposition toward
l’amour fou:
The auteurists adored such movies as Vertigo, You Only Live Once, Rebel
Without a Cause, They Live By Night, Gun Crazy, and Letter from an
Unknown Woman – all of which were concerned with compulsive lovers who
flouted bourgeois morality and consumed themselves with passion. As film
makers [the New Wave] enshrined this theme in their work: for example in
Godard’s Breathless and Pierrot le fou.60
According to Andrew, Godard uses the intertextual references of A bout de
souffle in at least two ways. The first (stronger use) ‘deepens the aesthetic
161
and philosophical thrust of [the film] by linking it to low-art film noir’.
The second (weaker use) involves a kind of inter-art intertextuality,
quoting elite works – by William Faulkner, Dylan Thomas, Paul Klee and
others – ‘to vary the tone of his scenes, [and] to keep his drama within a
live and lively cultural space’.61 By contrast, Jefferson Kline argues that all
of Godard’s intertexts – high and low, literary and cinematic – are congruent ‘to the dominant (American) philosophical thrust of the film’.62
Kline finds in Thomas’s Portrait of the Artist as a Young Dog (referenced
in the extended sequence in Patricia’s apartment) and Maurice Sach’s
Abracadabra (which turns up in the final scene between Michel and
Patricia) passages that ‘portray the American B cinema as a model for their
characters’ fantasies and behaviour’.63 This in turn suggests a linkage with
A bout de souffle’s third major literary intertext, Faulkner’s The Wild Palms.
Kline writes:
The Wild Palms, like so many other of the American B movie models [that]
Godard’s characters [follow], recounts another ill-starred romance . . .
Patricia’s quotation ‘Between grief and nothing I will take grief ’ . . . reads
like a Sartrean passage of existential choice . . . In refusing grief Michel
appears to betray Faulkner, but ironically, in choosing death be enters into a
double bind: his is exactly the path chosen by all the heroes he emulates.
Almost in spite of himself he ends up being essentially American.64
Godard’s Americanism spins out through one further intertext: film
maker Jean-Pierre Melville, whose ‘erudite passion for American detective movies was already legendary’.65 Melville is often called up as a forerunner of the French New Wave, having concisely described the
movement (and his own work) as an artisanal system of production. ‘The
new cinema’, he said, ‘is natural location, non-synchronised shooting,
fast film stock, small crew and . . . [the innovative photography] of Henri
Decae’.66 Moreover, like Godard’s early period of film work, Melville’s
cinéphilia was concerned substantially with American film, and he is said
to have ‘exercised a very strong influence on Truffaut’s and Godard’s
discovery of the “little masters of the ‘B’ pictures” ’.67 In the mid-1950s,
Melville had begun a cycle of gangster films or French policiers: Bob le
flambeur (1956), Deux hommes dans Manhattan (1959) and L’Ainé des
Ferchaux (1963). The first of these – Bob le flambeur – tells the story of
Bob (Roger Duchesne), an ageing but still influential gangster and
gambler (flambeur) down on his luck who plans one last robbery before
retiring. Drawing upon what Melville considered the ‘perfect’ American
heist movie, The Asphalt Jungle (John Huston, 1950), Bob le flambeur
brings together a naturalistic interest in Parisian location shooting and
162
a mythical concern for the professional Hollywood gangster. This ‘dual
project’ is evident in the film’s opening:
On the one hand, the fashion in which Bob is placed on the streets of
Montmartre and Pigalle is almost neo-realist in feel. On the other, the repetition of [Bob’s] name, the excessive musical accompaniment, the reiterated
silhouetting, the sardonic narcissism, all point to Melville’s self-conscious
citation of a Hollywood archetype.68
A bout de souffle made even more explicit its debt to American cinema and
paid tribute to Melville in at least two ways. First, Godard cast Melville
himself as the writer Parvulesco interviewed at Orly airport by Patricia.
Melville appears in the film wearing his signature Ray-Bans and Americanstyle hat, and claims that he modelled the character of Parvulesco on
Russian-born American novelist Vladimir Nabokov: ‘I had seen Nabokov
in a televised interview, and being like him, subtle, pretentious, pedantic, a
bit cynical, naïve, etc., I based the character on him’.69 Second, Godard’s
debt to Melville – and more specifically to Bob le flambeur – is inscribed
textually in A bout de souffle’s use of ‘location shooting, rough editing and
in its hero, Michel Poiccard’.70 More particularly, in an early scene,
Michel’s contact at the Inter-American Travel Agency, Tolmatchoff, is
questioned by the police. They say: ‘Remember when you tipped us off to
your friend Bob? You’re going to repeat that performance’. The reference
here, to the character Bob, is widely recognised as being to ‘none other than
Michel’s prototype, a small-time gangster with plenty of style, the star of
Melville’s precocious [Bob le flambeur]’.71
Melville’s best known films – Bob le flambeur and Le Samouraï (1967) –
have more recently been revisited – remade – as The Good Thief (Neil
Jordan, 2002) and Ghost Dog: The Way of the Samurai (Jim Jarmusch,
1999), respectively. The first of these, a credited remake of Bob le flambeur,
transposes the action from Paris to present-day Nice to tell the story of
down-on-his-luck American gambler Bob Montagne (Nick Nolte). Bob
lays plans for a decoy heist of a Monte Carlo casino so that his accomplices
can actually rob a nearby vault of its priceless paintings. His team bungles
the job, but Bob – in the casino at the time of the robbery – finally hits a
lucky streak and wins a fortune. Ginette Vincendeau states that The Good
Thief ‘demands’ to be seen in relation to its original, not only because the
Melville film ‘has attained cult status among a certain band of cinephiles’,
but also because The Good Thief is ‘centrally concerned with issues of
doubling, fakes, [and] dual nationalities’.72 Originally titled ‘double down’
(a blackjack term), Neil Jordan says of The Good Thief: ‘I was asked to do
163
a remake of Melville’s film, but there didn’t seem to be any cogent reason
to redo it. So I thought if I doubled up the plot I’d be able to come up
with a different movie that would have some reference to the original but
wouldn’t be utter plagiarism’.73 The relationship between the two films is,
however, more complicated because (as previously described) the ‘identity’
of Bob le flambeur is itself grounded in Melville’s passion for American film
culture. Bob le flambeur remakes the American gangster movie, ‘acclimatis[ing] it through a set of cultural filters into a “French” product: the pace
of filming (stillness, contemplation, temps morts [sic]), the actors, language
(the idiomatic slang of the Série Noire) and location’.74 Jordan’s film
‘doubles’ Melville, but also performs a similar gesture of exchange, taking
a basic template and transforming it through the twin filters of the (international) heist movie (other recent examples include John Frankenheimer’s Ronin (1998), and remakes of The Italian Job and Ocean’s Eleven),
and international star cast: Nick Nolte, but also Gérard Darmon, Tchéky
Karyo, Emir Kusturica and others.
Another reinvention of Melville’s work can be found in Jim Jarmusch’s
Ghost Dog: The Way of the Samurai, an (uncredited) remaking of Le
Samouraï. Melville’s most famous film, Le Samouraï, tells the story of Jef
Costello (Alain Delon), a lone contract killer who lives by a strict personal
and professional code akin to that of the masterless samurai, or ronin. But
as in Melville’s other work, Le Samouraï is also a tracing of American
culture, in this case ‘a “remake” of Frank Tuttle’s This Gun for Hire (1942)
and as based on a novel by Joan MacLeod called The Ronin’.75 Vincendeau
says that, like Melville’s earlier creation Bob, ‘Jef has been perceived as a
walking “quote” – with his name, occupation, trench-coat and felt hat – of
the classic American noir gangster’.76 And, as in the case of The Good Thief,
Jarmusch takes the outline of Melville’s film and ‘multiplies’ the citations,
filtering the ancient code of the samurai through Italian mobster and black
urban culture. Furthermore, like Melville’s Jef Costello, the Ghost Dog
(Forest Whitaker) is a ‘mythic profile’,77 a reclusive assassin who tends to
his birds (Jef keeps a bullfinch, Ghost Dog a roost of pigeons) and adheres
to a samurai-like code of honour. More than this, where Melville’s film
begins with a (faux) quotation from the Book of Bushido (‘There is no
greater solitude than that of the Samurai, unless perhaps it be that of the
tiger in the jungle’), 78 Ghost Dog starts with (and quotes throughout by way
of extended inter-titles) Tsunetomo Yamamoto’s Hagakure: The Book of
the Samurai. Additionally, Jarmusch references Melville’s mannerist style.
For instance, early in Le Samouraï there is a celebrated passage in which
Jef steals a 1967 Citroën DS by systematically trying out a set of keys in the
ignition until (the fifth) one takes. Jarmusch reworks the minimalism of
164
this scene, with the Ghost Dog calmly running a number of sequences
through an electronic coding device to enter and start up the targeted
vehicle.
Jonathan Rosenbaum describes Jarmusch as an ‘international
sampler’, a connoisseur of intercultural essentials.79 As this suggests,
Ghost Dog’s reworking of the Melville prototype is channelled not only
through Jarmusch’s own mannerist (and minimalist) aesthetic, but
through the appropriation of a host of culturally disparate artefacts such
as hip-hop, animated cartoons and gangster movies. For instance,
members of the mob are seen watching a chronological progression of
cartoons, from Betty Boop through Felix the Cat and Woody Woodpecker
to Itchy and Scratchy, which (like the excepts from Hagakure) seem to
foreshadow the action. At one point, Ghost Dog looks through a window
to see one of the gang’s minders amused by a television cartoon that
shows a character attach his automatic rifle to a tap mounted on an external wall. He pumps rounds of ammunition up the plumbing to unleash a
literal shower of bullets over a second character sitting in a bathtub. After
dispatching the bodyguard, Ghost Dog enters the basement to the house
(it belongs to crime-boss Sonny Valerio) where he unscrews the drain
pipe for the bathroom above, and shoots Valerio in the forehead when he
leans over the basin. This would seem a straightforward (internal) repetition of the previous sequence but the quotation is again ‘doubled’ in that
it also references a similar episode in Seijin Suzuki’s Branded to Kill
(1967). Jarmusch extends his ‘personal thanks’ to Suzuki (Melville,
Yamamoto and others) in Ghost Dog’s credit sequence. He additionally
made a point of showing the veteran Japanese B-movie director his
completed film of which Suzuki playfully remarked: ‘I see you’ve taken
some things from me, and when I make my next film I’m going to take
some things from you’.80
Given the interest in cooptation described above it is perhaps not
surprising that Hollywood would eventually return to and directly
remake Godard’s A bout de souffle (see below), but not before Godard had
performed his own limited remaking of his first feature in Pierrot le fou
(1965). Based on Lionel White’s novel Obsession, Pierrot le fou tells the
story (as Godard describes it) of the ‘last romantic couple’.81 According
to Kline, Godard follows the outline of White’s novel which involves a
man who, like the character of Pierrot-Ferdinand (Jean-Paul Belmondo
again), leaves his wife to run off with the babysitter (in this case, OdileMarianne played by Anna Karina). Kline states that a number of details –
Pierrot and Marianne’s flight and the scenes of underworld involvement,
murder and betrayal – ‘all stem directly from White’s plot’.82 At the same
165
time, a number of similarities can be drawn between Pierrot le fou and A
bout de souffle:
In both films a protagonist, played by Jean-Paul Belmondo, falls in love
with a woman he knows only casually, runs off with her, moving from stolen
car to stolen car, hoping to get to Italy . . . In each, the hero and his moll
temporarily hole up in a protected space from which she proceeds to betray
him . . . Both films end with the violent death of the male protagonist, in
both cases a death ‘chosen’ by that character.83
Significantly, too, each film incorporates an interview with a directormentor. In A bout de souffle it is Jean-Pierre Melville as Parvulesco; in
Pierrot le fou it is Samuel Fuller who appears (as himself) in an early scene
to deliver his definition of movies (and description of the film that is about
to unfold): ‘[cinema is] a battleground. Love. Hate. Action. Violence.
Death. In one word . . . Emotion’. Kline argues that other intertexts –
works by Aragon, Balzac and Céline – are ultimately used to screen out
both A bout de souffle and White’s Obsession to depict a radically ‘different
epistemological topos’.84 Nevertheless, the fact that Pierrot le fou functions
(in some sense) as a ‘double’ of A bout de souffle is made clear (at the beginning of the later film) when Marianne and Pierrot reveal that this (last
romantic) couple has ‘met before’ – in October 1959 – the exact time that
A bout de souffle was being assembled.85
In July 1978 American independent film maker Jim McBride approached
screenwriter L. M. Kit Carson with the idea that they collaborate on a
credited ‘redo’ of Godard’s A bout de souffle, updated and relocated to
present-day Los Angeles. McBride and Carson had worked together on
David Holzman’s Diary (Jim McBride, 1967) and the unfinished adaptation of Walker Percy’s 1961 novel The Moviegoer.86 As for many emerging
American film makers of the 1960s and 1970s, A bout de souffle had been a
‘root movie experience’, and McBride and Carson saw the idea of a
Breathless remake as a ‘fitting reckless payback to Godard’.87 An initial
script was developed and the remake rights secured from Godard well
before the end of 1978, but the project was not green-lighted until Richard
Gere – an emerging star with hits such as American Gigolo (Paul Schrader,
1980) and An Officer and a Gentleman (Taylor Hackford, 1982) – was
signed for the lead role some three years later. In June 1982, McBride,
Carson and Gere met to streamline the script and intensify the main characters ahead of an August–September shoot. Part of the process included
a screening of films such as Killer’s Kiss (Stanley Kubrick, 1955), High
166
Gun Crazy (Joseph H. Lewis, 1950). Courtesy United Artists/The Kobal
Collection.
Breathless (Jim McBride, 1983). Courtesy Orion/The Kobal Collection.
167
Sierra and Gun Crazy. Of this revisiting of (some) key intertexts for A bout
de souffle, Carson said: ‘Godard took chunks of American movies and reinvented them . . . I realise [that what] we’re doing [is] a double remake’.88
Pamela Falkenberg (similarly) describes A bout de souffle as ‘a simultaneous and double rewriting: the rewriting of the French commercial cinema
(conceived of as a transformation) through the rewriting of the Hollywood
commercial cinema (conceived of as reproduction)’. Breathless is in turn
seen as an ‘inverse rewriting’: ‘the rewriting of the commercial Hollywood
cinema (conceived of as transformation) through the rewriting of the
French art cinema (conceived of as reproduction)’.89 And more recently
Carolyn Durham has argued that a further set of inversions accrue around
the remake’s reversal of national and sexual identity.90 These exchanges
and inversions can be described as follows. A bout de souffle begins in
Marseilles with small-time gangster Michel Poiccard stealing an American
car, an Oldsmobile. On his way to Paris to see an accomplice (Tolmatchoff)
about money, he shoots and kills a motorcycle cop. This sets in motion a
classic noir story of pursuit and entrapment. In Paris, Michel looks up
Patricia, an American student and aspiring journalist with whom he has
had a brief relationship. Michel holes up in Patricia’s (small) apartment
and, as the police net tightens, they lay plans to escape over the border (to
Italy). But at the last minute Patricia changes her mind and reports Michel
to the police. The film ends with Michel gunned down by the law.
McBride’s remake closely follows (but inverts) the contours of Godard’s
film. Breathless begins in Las Vegas with small-time thief Jesse Lujack
stealing a European car, a Porsche. On his way to Los Angeles to see an
accomplice (Tolmatchoff) about money, he shoots and kills a highway
patrolman. This sets in motion a neo-noir story of pursuit and entrapment.
In Los Angeles, Jesse looks up Monica Poiccard (Valérie Kaprisky), a
French student and aspiring architect with whom he has had a brief
relationship. Jesse holes up in Monica’s (spacious) apartment and, as the
police net tightens, they lay plans to escape over the border (to Mexico).
But at the last minute Monica changes her mind and reports Jesse to the
police. The film ends with Jesse (apparently) gunned down by the law.
Beyond these general repetitions Breathless assumes Godard’s interest in
self-conscious allusion to, and quotation of, American pop culture. For
instance, in A bout de souffle Godard adopts Humphrey Bogart as an emblem
of 1950s ‘cool’, posing Michel in front of a poster from The Harder They
Fall and having him run his thumb across his lips in imitation of Bogart.
Carson and McBride return (and update) the ‘gesture’, having Jesse identify not only with the ‘original crazy boy of rock’n’roll’, Jerry Lee Lewis,
but because this didn’t ‘feel size enough’, invoke also Marvel Comics’ the
168
Silver Surfer. In another instance of inversion and doubling, Carson says
‘we reverse Godard: he went cool, we go hot . . . That’s our Bogart:
Jerry Lee Lewis/The Silver Surfer . . . It’s sci-fi and rock’n’roll, the two
most important artefacts in [American] culture today’.91 Breathless incorporates the Jerry Lee Lewis song ‘Breathless’ into its opening and closing
sequences, and Jesse adopts the Silver Surfer’s motto, ‘Love is the power
supreme’. In addition to this, numerous frame enlargements from The
Silver Surfer comic books not only recall Godard’s use of the iconography
of Pop Art within the collage aesthetics of Pierrot le fou, but constitute a
kind of ‘internal remaking’. That is, Jesse’s readings from The Silver Surfer
(outside the casino, at the news-stand, in Monica’s apartment) depict him
as a character who stays to save those who do not necessarily want his help
and confront those ‘who are always after him, like the cops and the marines’.
In this way, the Silver Surfer – ‘a space-lost freak, looking for love’ – reflects
Jesse’s (outlaw) character, and the story of the Surfer and his girlfriend, who
are ‘trapped in two different galaxies’, anticipates the central action of
Breathless.92
In another example, Godard’s enthusiasm for American B-movies is
acknowledged through the direct quotation of A bout de souffle prototype,
Gun Crazy. This occurs toward the end of Breathless, when Jesse and
Monica take refuge from the police in a movie theatre. They hide in the
space behind the screen and begin to make love, with Gun Crazy’s Bart and
Laurie projected (in reverse) behind them. As Durham notes:
Monica and Jesse make love to the accompaniment and in imitation of the
actors whose romance is projected in larger-than-life-size images on the
screen behind . . . Monica’s Hollywood double [Laurie] describes her ideal
man in terms that clearly identify Jesse as his identical twin: ‘I want a guy
with spirit and guts, a guy who can laugh at anything or do anything, a guy
who can [. . .] win the world for me’.93
Monica and Jesse embrace, and Monica repeats one of Laurie’s lines –
‘I don’t want to be afraid of love or anything else’ – to which Jesse replies,
‘You don’t have to be afraid of nothing’. The sequence ends with the camera
tilting up over Jesse and Monica to close in on a shot (the beginning of the
next segment in Gun Crazy) of a gumball machine shattered by a bullet. In
both films, and especially in Breathless (occurring so near the end), this is
played as a presage, an obvious marker that things will not end well.
For Lucy Mazdon, Breathless’s voracious appetite for quotation – ‘the
fragmentation and incorporation of both A bout de souffle (the simulation
of a simulation) and . . . the “whole ‘degraded’ landscape of schlock and
kitsch” ’ – make it ‘a textbook of postmodern style’.94 Following Godard’s
169
own ‘post-modernism’, McBride (and those, like Quentin Tarantino, who
follow) seem to recognise that ‘the truth of any new cinema . . . is not established by looking at life in the streets or in a director’s psyche, but by
looking at other movies, at books, songs, and representations of all sorts’.95
More than this, McBride understands that what makes A bout de souffle an
enduring original, ‘what can only be original, is the film’s energy’.96 In
Breathless, this vitality is evident in the rampant ‘sampling’ of its soundtrack: rock’n’roll (Sam Cooke, Mink DeVille), African beats (King Sunny
Ade), salsa (Joe ‘King’ Carrasco, Eddie Palmieri), surf (Link Wray and the
Wraymen), ambient (Robert Fripp and Brian Eno, Philip Glass), and postpunk (Pretenders, X). More significantly (and as in Gun Crazy), this
energy is expressed in vehicular terms, specifically in the sequence in
which Jesse picks up Monica in a classic, 1957 Ford Thunderbird convertible (which he has just stolen from characters played by McBride’s wife and
son). The camera assumes a position just outside the driver’s-side door to
take in a close-up shot of Monica and Jesse. As they embrace and kiss, it
scribes a 180-degree arc across the bonnet of the car (taking in a view of
the couple through the windscreen) to come to rest on the opposite side of
the car, just long enough for Monica to say ‘I feel so brave with you’. Again
they kiss, and the camera repeats the movement (in reverse) to return to its
initial position, and Jesse’s reply: ‘Come on, let’s just go, sugar. Let’s just
go [to Mexico]’. All of this is accompanied by the driving surf-guitar of
Link Wray and the Wraymen’s ‘Jack the Ripper’. There follows then a
sequence of seven shots. Jesse reverses the T-bird half way down the street,
turns it in the opposite direction and takes it – at high speed – up and over
a crest in the road. The movement of the car literally flying over the hill,
renders in action the film’s breathless-style and literalises Monica’s earlier
comment to Jesse: ‘you’re like one of those rides at Disneyland . . . Wow,
you make me dizzy’.
Monica’s words point not only to Jesse’s ‘breathless’ character, but to
Richard Gere’s remarkable somatic performance: Gere runs, pumps and
hustles his way through the entire film. This nervous energy begins outside
a Las Vegas casino with Jesse stealing a Porsche, which he drives out across
the Mojave Desert, headed for Los Angeles. Among the car’s contents he
finds a nickel-plated .45, and a number of audio cassettes (disco . . .
Manilow . . .) which he discards before taking from his pocket the
Killer’s – Jerry Lee Lewis’s – recording of ‘Breathless’. Against the backdrop of a vivid (‘postmodern’) sunset and to the pounding beats of
‘Breathless’, Jesse proceeds to sing along and wildly gesticulate. Jesse later
introduces Monica to Jerry Lee’s music (in another wild drive), and he
returns to the song ‘Breathless’ in the film’s closing sequence. Following
170
Monica’s call to the police, Jesse runs to meet his friend Tony Berrutti who
implores Jesse to leave with him. (As the kid at the news-stand has earlier
said of the Silver Surfer: ‘only a jerk would stay when he could leave’.) Jesse
refuses, and with police sirens wailing in the background, Berrutti tosses
him a handgun which falls at Jesse’s feet. Monica and the cops arrive: Jesse
caught between them. Jesse performs one last wild rendition of
‘Breathless’, singing and dancing, pumping his arms defiantly at the police,
reaching out longingly to Monica. She screams out his name and runs
toward him. Jesse reaches down, picks up the gun and turns to face the
police. The image freezes at the moment of his (inevitable) death, and to
sounds of X’s punk cover-version (remake) of ‘Breathless’.
Some ten years after its release, Breathless made it into Quentin
Tarantino’s ‘strictly unofficial’ all-time list (anti-canon) of ‘coolest movies’,
just behind his top three in Rio Bravo (Howard Hawks, 1959), Taxi Driver
(Martin Scorsese, 1976) and Blow Out (Brian De Palma, 1981).97 This is
not surprising for Breathless is a film that anticipates Tarantino, not only
for its pop-cultural references and inspired use of ‘found’ music, but also
for the way that Gere’s hyperactive characterisation of Jesse infects the
motormouth persona of Tarantino. More than this, Tarantino – who
acknowledges (in his top three films) both classic and first-wave American
auteurs (Hawks, Scorsese and De Palma) – becomes himself foremost
among the emerging video-generation or second-wave auteurs of the 1990s.
In this capacity, Tarantino at once affirms and extends the canon, tracing a
line from Gun Crazy through A bout de souffle to Breathless, and authorising
his own arcane references and extended remakings.
Notes
1.
2.
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
Wollen, ‘The Canon’, p. 218.
Ibid., p. 219.
Ibid., pp. 221–2.
Ibid., p. 222.
Ibid., p. 223.
Ibid.
See Smith, ‘The Perfect Filmic Appositeness of Maria Montez’, pp. 28–36.
Godard, in Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 173.
Altman, Film/Genre, p. 124.
Christie, ‘The Rules of the Game’, p. 26, emphasis added.
Deleuze, Cinema 2, pp. 44–67.
Friedman, Bonnie and Clyde, pp. 21–41. See also Friedman, Arthur Penn’s
Bonnie and Clyde, and Cawelti, Focus on Bonnie and Clyde.
13. Ray, A Certain Tendency of the Hollywood Cinema, p. 290.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
171
Newman and Benton, ‘Lightning in a Bottle’, p. 13.
Ibid., pp. 13–14.
Ibid., p. 14.
Ibid., pp. 14–15.
Ibid., p. 15.
Ibid., p. 18.
Carson, ‘ “It’s Never the Way I Knew Them” ’, p. 44.
Corrigan, A Cinema Without Walls, p. 150.
Bernstein, ‘Perfecting the New Gangster’, p. 25.
Newman and Benton, ‘Lightning in a Bottle’, p. 23.
Ibid., p. 21.
Meisel, ‘Joseph H. Lewis’, p. 90. See also Cawelti, Focus on Bonnie and Clyde,
p. 2.
Hirsch, Detours and Lost Highways, p. 34.
Treherne, The Strange History of Bonnie and Clyde, p. 227.
Quoted in ibid. pp. 228–9.
See, for instance, Kerr, ‘My Name Is Joseph H. Lewis’, and the retrospective
of nine Lewis films in Monthly Film Bulletin, March and April 1980.
Martin, ‘Violently Happy’, p. 57.
Kitses, Gun Crazy, p. 14.
Ibid.
See Kinder, ‘The Return of the Outlaw Couple’, pp. 2–10.
Kitses, Gun Crazy, p. 10; and Penn, ‘Song of the Open Road’, p. 59.
Kitses, Gun Crazy, p. 34, emphasis added.
Ibid., p. 36.
Ibid., p. 43.
Ibid., p. 54.
Ibid., p. 64.
Ibid.
Marie, The French New Wave, p. 27.
Ross, Fast Cars, Clean Bodies, p. 38.
Naremore, ‘Authorship and the Cultural Politics of Film Criticism’, p. 17.
Bruno, ‘Driven’, p. 57.
Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 234, emphasis added.
Bruno, ‘Driven’, p. 58.
Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 173.
Elsasser [sic], ‘Two Decades in Another Country’, p. 211.
Quoted in Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 4.
Marie, ‘ “It Really Makes You Sick!” ’, p. 158.
Ibid., pp. 158–73.
Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 174.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 13.
Ibid., p. 17. See also Andrew, ‘Notes on the Continuity Script’, p. 149, n. 29;
and Iampolski, The Memory of Tiresias, p. 31.
172
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
67.
68.
69.
70.
71.
72.
73.
74.
75.
76.
77.
78.
79.
80.
81.
82.
83.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
89.
90.
91.
92.
93.
94.
95.
96.
97.
Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 62.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 13.
Ibid., p. 14.
Ibid.
Ibid.
Naremore, ‘Authorship and the Cultural Politics of Film Criticism’, p. 17.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 17.
Kline, Screening the Text, p. 196.
Ibid., p. 198.
Ibid., pp. 199–200.
Marie, The French New Wave, p. 44.
Quoted in Vincendeau, Jean-Pierre Melville, p. 15.
Marie, The French New Wave, pp. 44–5.
Vincendeau, Jean-Pierre Melville, p. 111.
Quoted in ibid., p. 116.
Ibid.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 13.
Vincendeau, ‘Gamblers Anonymous’, p. 22.
Jordan, ‘Double Down’, p. 78.
Vincendeau, ‘Gamblers Anonymous’, p. 24.
Vincendeau, Jean-Pierre Melville, p. 175.
Ibid., p. 179.
Rosenbaum, ‘International Sampler’.
See Nogueira, Melville, p. 129.
Rosenbaum, ‘International Sampler’.
Quoted in ibid.
Milne and Narboni, Godard on Godard, p. 216.
Kline, Screening the Text, p. 203.
Ibid., p. 186.
Ibid., p. 204.
Williams, ‘Pierrot in Context’, p. 50.
Hillier, The New Hollywood, p. 68.
Carson, ‘Breathless Diary’, p. 34.
Ibid., p. 38.
Falkenberg, ‘ “Hollywood” and the “Art Cinema” as a Bipolar Modeling
System’, p. 44.
Durham, Double Takes, pp. 49–69.
Carson, ‘Breathless Diary’, p. 35.
Durham, Double Takes, p. 58.
Ibid., p. 65.
Mazdon, Encore Hollywood, pp. 85–7.
Andrew, ‘Breathless: Old as New’, p. 19.
Ibid., p. 18, emphasis added.
Clarkson, Quentin Tarantino, pp. 297–300.
Conclusion: Remaking Everything
Quentin says: ‘It [was] a film-geek thing to do’. A twenty-two-year-old
film school graduate, with the ‘cool-sounding name’ of Mr White,
entered Who Do You Think You’ re Fooling?, a short film comparing
Quentin Tarantino’s Reservoir Dogs (1992) and Ringo Lam’s City on Fire
(1987), in the 1995 New York Underground Film Festival.1 The question of the similarities between the two films had already surfaced in the
pages of Empire and Film Threat magazines, and Tarantino had defended
his film in (what White describes as) the ‘Great Poster Defense’ at the
1994 festival at Cannes. Asked whether Reservoir Dogs and Ringo Lam’s
film – the story of an undercover cop who had infiltrated a band of
thieves preparing to rob a jewellery store – were the same, Tarantino
replied:
I loved City on Fire. I got the poster framed in my house, so it’s a great
movie . . . I steal from every single movie made . . . If my work has anything
it’s because I’m taking from this and from that, piecing them together.
If people don’t like it, tough titty, don’t go see it.2
‘The Ringo Lam thing’ was more widely reported in two books on the life
and movies of Quentin Tarantino – Wensley Clarkson’s Quentin
Tarantino: Shooting from the Hip and Jami Bernard’s Quentin Tarantino:
The Man and His Movies (both 1995) – that appeared at a time when
Tarantino had only as many films (as director) to his credit. Tarantino
had exploded on to the filmmaking scene in October 1992 with the release
of the noir-inflected Reservoir Dogs, and with the follow-up of his monumentally successful (and influential) Pulp Fiction two years later (October
1994) he became a cause célèbre. Pulp Fiction was accompanied by a media
storm, provoking reviews, articles and interviews in such publications
as The Face and Grand Street, and a print symposium in Artforum.3 As
174
Peter Biskind noted, the French in particular embraced Tarantino, the
cinephile’s cinephile:
The French loved Reservoir Dogs – it was like a smart bomb lasered into the
core of their infatuation with the dark stars of American B movies. More, it
flattered them with bows in the direction of Jean-Pierre Melville and JeanLuc Godard . . . In the country that minted the auteur theory, Tarantino
himself [had] nearly as much marquee value as his actors.4
The Bernard and Clarkson biographies further celebrated the new media
icon, Tarantino. But in reporting the question of Reservoir Dogs’ ‘homage’
to City on Fire they reveal an underlying conflict between what is, on the
one hand, a portrait of Tarantino as a new and original American talent, a
creator-auteur close to the real matter of life, and on the other, an account
of a film geek-metteur-en-scène, a rip-off artist steeped in trash culture and
second-hand material. Clarkson attempts to negotiate the tension between
innovation and imitation by constructing an elaborate story-myth of origin:
of an abandoned child-bride who drags her infant Quentin from the backwoods of Tennessee to the mean streets of Los Angeles. Consulting ‘the
person who knows Quentin best – his mother Connie Zastoupil’ – and
Tarantino’s published screenplays (which ‘tell so much of [Quentin’s] life
that they provided the thread . . . needed to sew the narrative together’5)
Clarkson locates Tarantino’s ongoing exploration of the themes of loyalty
and betrayal in a succession of difficult father–son relationships.6 Deserted
before birth by his natural father, abandoned at age nine by his adoptive
father and betrayed by Zastoupil’s third husband (whose interest in
Quentin was grounded in a desire to be near the Hollywood film industry),
Tarantino invests in various father figures (Howard Hawks, Monte
Hellman, Harvey Keitel) and fills his films with ‘adoptive fathers and father
surrogates’7 – Mr White (Harvey Keitel) in Reservoir Dogs, Captain Koons
(Christopher Walken) in Pulp Fiction, Elvis (Val Kilmer) in True Romance,
Bill (David Carradine) in Kill Bill, vol. 2 (2004). If this is an instance of
some authentic, real-life experience finding its way into Tarantino’s work,
then Clarkson similarly describes Quentin as a streetwise youth whose stint
as usher/bouncer at the Pussycat Porno Theater and time in the LA
County Jail gave him ‘authority [to write] about something he had experienced for himself, rather than seen on TV or at a movie theater’.8
At the same time, Clarkson sketches a portrait of the archetypal film
geek. Raised on Clutch Cargo cartoons and Fruit Brute breakfast cereal
(which find their way into Pulp Fiction and Reservoir Dogs respectively), the
young Quentin divides his time between the Tarzana 6 Movie Theatre
:
175
where, accompanied by his mother, he watches films like Carnal Knowledge
(Mike Nichols, 1971) and Deliverance (John Boorman, 1972) and the
Carson Twin which features kung-fu movies and ‘naughty late-night
Roger Corman double bills like The Student Teachers [1973] and Night Call
Nurses [1973]’.9 Graduating from school drop-out (Quentin loses interest
in school after kindergarten) to some-time actor and screenwriter,
Tarantino later enters ‘movie geek paradise’ when he takes a job at Video
Archives in Manhattan Beach. Here Tarantino introduces patrons equally
to the films of Eric Rohmer and ‘Women in Prison’ movies, but also ‘earns
his own PhD in cinema’ through the (repeated) viewing of hundreds of
films on video.10 This encyclopaedic knowledge of film and devotion to
popular culture which infuses his written work (the Madonna rap in
Reservoir Dogs, the hamburger Royale spiel in Pulp Fiction, the Superman
speech in Kill Bill, vol. 2) ultimately, however, marks Tarantino as someone
far from the essence of life:
Quentin knows everything about pop culture. But his greatest strength is his
greatest weakness. He is only interested in pop culture . . . [The] problem
people have with Quentin’s work is that it speaks of other movies, instead of
life. The big trick is to live a life and then make movies about that life.11
While Bernard’s book is a little more critical (than Clarkson’s) of the
Tarantino hype, it nonetheless turns around a similar opposition of, on the
one hand, ‘movies about life’ and, on the other, of ‘movies about movies’.
Bernard begins by stating, against ‘those who claim Quentin lives his life
through [the inauthentic world of] movies’, that Tarantino is ‘thoroughly
connected and engaged with the [real] world’.12 This idea is worked
through principally in relation to Tarantino’s strong disapproval (and badmouthing) of Oliver Stone’s rewrite of the Tarantino screenplay for
Natural Born Killers (1994). In response to Tarantino’s suggestion that
Stone should have turned the script for Natural Born Killers into a smaller
film – a movie – Stone is reported to have said:
I make movies, too. I love movies . . . [but] film should be about life experience. When I was in film school, a lot of the kids were doing technically brilliant films, but they based them on other movies. So it’s important for movies
to break through that barrier and try to be about your own felt experience . . .
The question is, can [Tarantino] expand his world view beyond . . . the combination of violence and humour? Pop culture icons, references to Madonna
and Michael Jackson – it’s fun. But that’s not what you can live on . . . You
can make fun movies, or pulpy movies, but I don’t know, is there really something being said?13
176
Here, Stone takes Tarantino’s suggestion – that an established filmmaker
do something small, something more authentic – and turns it on its head:
authenticity is not determined by the scale of the production, but by the
nature of the referent – ‘real life’ as opposed to ‘other movies’. This is an
interesting inversion, for elsewhere Tarantino is defined against a privileged film school-educated generation, the likes of Coppola, Spielberg
and Lucas, but also Stone who went to NYU film school via Yale.
Emphasising a more intuitive – that is, authentic – approach to filmmaking,
Robert Rodriguez (Tarantino contemporary and collaborator on Four
Rooms, 1994, and From Dusk Till Dawn, 1996) says:
I look at Alex [Rockwell] and Quentin and Alison [Anders] and I’m sitting
there, we couldn’t afford film school. We couldn’t get into film school. We
were coming from different kinds of struggling families . . . [We] didn’t have
contacts . . . We just concentrated on the work, and people found us . . . And
we can offer stuff that you don’t usually see coming out of film schools, cause
we didn’t learn how to do it by listening to someone else, but by watching
movies and coming up with our own plans and ideas.14
Like fellow director and former Video Archives buddy Roger Avary,
Tarantino is considered part of a ‘video store generation’.15 Richard Pena,
(former) director of the New York Film Festival, describes him as ‘a
second-generation movie brat whose range of influence now goes beyond
old Hollywood and European [auteur] cinema to include Hong Kong and
a lot of other references, including television [and popular culture]’.16
Pena’s comment further complicates the question of originality and
intertextual referentiality by indirectly introducing the issue of extratextuality. Cinema constantly remakes itself, but whether this is understood as
homage, imitation or theft depends (as described throughout this book)
upon historically specific technologies such as copyright law and authorship, film reviewing and exhibition practices. In discussing Tarantino’s
borrowings from other films, it is necessary to acknowledge that the (intertextual) referent is no more or less immediate than in the work of
Hollywood’s first new wave, for instance Paul Schrader’s various updates
of The Searchers in scripts and films such as Taxi Driver, Rolling Thunder,
Hardcore, Patty Hearst and Bringing Out the Dead. The difference is that
Schrader’s references were grounded in the work of a celebrated American
auteur and in The Searchers, one of the most highly canonised of
Hollywood Westerns.17 When comparisons were made between JeanPierre Melville’s Le Doulos (1962) and Reservoir Dogs in a Film Comment
interview,18 Tarantino missed his opportunity to further authorise his borrowing and ‘correct’ the canon. This is something that Tarantino has
:
177
actively done in more recent years, negotiating the re-release of Blow Out
(Brian De Palma, 1981), finding distribution for Chungking Express (Wong
Kar Wai, 1994) and introducing mainstream audiences to the work of
Sonny Chiba and the Shaw Brothers in Kill Bill, vol. 1 (2003). On top of
this, Tarantino’s film work is now the source of inspiration for the work
of others, for example Amores perros (Alejandro González Iñárritu, 2000)
and Cidade de Deus (City of God, Fernando Meirelles, 2002). All this is to
say that Tarantino’s ‘remake’ of City on Fire was considered ‘theft’ principally because it referred to a lesser-known Hong Kong film which (at the
time) lay outside the established canon and didn’t carry (until after White’s
critique) any extratextual authorisation. It seems likely that, if Tarantino
had mobilised his own superfan persona (and ‘great poster defense’) earlier,
or if a press release had bestowed upon City on Fire the authority of an
emerging body of Hong Kong film (the work of John Woo, Stanley Kwan,
Tsui Hark), then Mike White’s Who Do You Think You’re Fooling? would
have been a film essay of elucidation rather than an exposition (exposé).
Ideas of originality and remaking – innovation and repetition, authenticity and imitation – continue to inform discourses around Tarantino’s
work. In fact, in the interviews that appeared at the time of the release of
Kill Bill, vol. 1, Tarantino himself took up the terms of the earlier Reservoir
Dogs–City on Fire debate to draw a (complicated) distinction between ‘two
universes’. The first ‘has all the fun of a movie-movie but is in fact more
real than life’ because it takes the conventions of ‘a genre movie and
then . . . throw[s] real life [situations] smack against [them]’. The other is
determinedly a movie-movie universe, one that is ‘not about real life, [but]
just about the movies’. Kill Bill, says Tarantino, is the first (Tarantinodirected) movie to be set in the latter universe.19 With Kill Bill, the wunderkind sets out, then, to make the ultimate movie-movie – stealing from
everyone, but now with the authority of a second-wave auteur and the
annotations of a Miramax press kit. If we learn anything from the case of
Quentin Tarantino it is that all films – originals and/as remakes – invest in
the repetition effects that characterise all films, all of cinema itself.
Notes
1. See White’s film on The Anti-Tarantino Page, http://www.impossiblefunky.
com/qt/default.htm
2. Quoted in Clarkson, Quentin Tarantino, p. 246.
3. See Floyd, ‘Quentin Tarantino’; Tarantino, ‘Blood Lust’; and Indiana et al.,
‘Pulp the Hype’.
4. Biskind, ‘An Auteur Is Born’, p. 95.
178
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
Clarkson, Quentin Tarantino, p. xvi.
Ibid., p. 128.
Willis, ‘The Fathers Watch the Boys’ Room’, p. 47.
Clarkson, Quentin Tarantino, p. 105.
Ibid., p. 39.
Ibid., p. 193.
Roger Avary, quoted in ibid., p. 217.
Bernard, Quentin Tarantino, p. 14.
Quoted in ibid., p. 121.
Quoted in ibid., pp. 261–2.
Ibid., p. 48.
Quoted in ibid., pp. 240–1.
Tarantino (belatedly) recreates the famous open doorway shot from The
Searchers in Kill Bill, vol. 2 (2004).
18. Smith, ‘When You Know You’re in Good Hands’, p. 40.
19. Tarantino, ‘Turning on a Dime’, p. 15.
References
Adair, Gilbert (1983) ‘Rev. of Breathless’, Monthly Film Bulletin, vol. 50, no. 596
(September), pp. 241–2.
Altman, Rick (1995) ‘A Semantic/Syntactic Approach to Film Genre’, in Barry
Keith Grant (ed.), Film Genre Reader II. Austin, TX: University of Texas
Press, pp. 26–40.
Altman, Rick (1999) Film/Genre. London: British Film Institute.
Anderson, Christopher (1994) Hollywood TV: The Studio System in the Fifties.
Austin, TX: University of Texas Press.
Andrew, Dudley (1987) ‘Breathless: Old as New’, in Dudley Andrew (ed.),
Breathless: Jean-Luc Godard, Director. New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers
University Press, pp. 3–20.
Andrew, Dudley (1987) ‘Notes on the Continuity Script’, in Dudley Andrew (ed.),
Breathless: Jean-Luc Godard, Director. New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers
University Press, pp. 147–52.
Andrew, Dudley (2000) ‘Adaptation’, in Naremore (ed.), Film Adaptation,
pp. 28–37.
Anobile, Richard J. (ed.) (1974) Alfred Hitchcock’s Psycho. London: Picador.
Aquin, Stéphane (2000) ‘Hitchcock and Contemporary Art’, in Dominique Païni
and Guy Cogeval (eds), Hitchcock and Art: Fatal Coincidences. Montreal:
Montreal Museum of Fine Arts, pp. 173–7.
Atkinson, Mike (1995) ‘Delirious Inventions’, Sight and Sound, vol. 5, no. 7 (July),
pp. 12–16.
Atkinson, Michael (1995) ‘Son of Apes’, Film Comment, vol. 31, no. 5
(September–October), pp. 62–6.
Bahrenburg, Bruce (1976) The Creation of Dino De Laurentiis’ King Kong.
London: W. H. Allen.
Balio, Tino (1990) ‘Introduction to Part II’, in Tino Balio (ed.), Hollywood in the
Age of Television. Boston: Unwin Hyman, pp. 259–96.
Balio, Tino (1993) Grand Design: Hollywood as a Modern Business Enterprise
1930–1939, History of the American Cinema vol. 5. New York: Charles
Scribner’s Sons.
180
Bellour, Raymond (2000) The Analysis of Film, (ed.) Constance Penley.
Bloomington, IN: Indiana University Press.
Bernard, Jami (1995) Quentin Tarantino: The Man and His Movies. London:
HarperCollins.
Bernstein, Matthew (2000) ‘Perfecting the New Gangster: Writing Bonnie and
Clyde’, Film Quarterly, vol. 53, no. 4, pp. 16–31.
Biesen, Sheri Chinen (2000) ‘Raising Cain with the Censors, Again: The
Postman Always Rings Twice (1946)’, Literature/Film Quarterly, vol. 28, no. 1,
pp. 41–8.
Biguenet, John (1998) ‘Double Takes: The Role of Allusion in Cinema’, in Horton
and McDougal (eds), Play it Again, Sam, pp. 131–43.
Biskind, Peter (1994) ‘An Auteur Is Born’, Premiere, November, pp. 94–102.
Bloom, Harold (1973) The Anxiety of Influence: A Theory of Poetry. New York:
Oxford University Press.
Bordwell, David (1985) Narration in the Fiction Film. London: Methuen.
Bordwell, David (1989) Making Meaning: Inference and Rhetoric in the
Interpretation of Cinema. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Boulle, Pierre (1963) Planet of the Apes, trans. Xan Fielding. New York: Vanguard
Press.
Brooks, Tim and Earle Marsh (1995) The Complete Directory to Prime Time
Network and Cable TV Shows, 1946–Present, 6th edn. New York: Ballantine.
Brooks, Xan (2001) ‘Rev. of Planet of the Apes’, Sight and Sound, vol. 11, no. 10
(October), pp. 54–6.
Broyles, William (2001) ‘Time and Destiny’, interview by Daniel Argent, Creative
Screenwriting, vol. 8, no. 4, pp. 39–43.
Brunette, Peter and David Wills (1989) Screen/Play: Derrida and Film Theory.
Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press.
Bruno, Giuliana (2001) ‘Driven’, 2wice, vol. 5, no. 2, pp. 56–64.
Cain, James M. [1934] (1981) The Postman Always Rings Twice. London: Pan.
Calabrese, Omar (1992) Neo-Baroque: A Sign of the Times, trans. Charles
Lambert. Princeton, NJ: Princeton University Press.
Carroll, Noël (1982) ‘The Future of Allusion: Hollywood in the Seventies (and
Beyond)’, October, no. 20, pp. 51–81.
Carson, Diane (2000) ‘ “It’s Never the Way I Knew Them”: Searching for Bonnie
and Clyde’, in Lester D. Friedman (ed.), Arthur Penn’s Bonnie and Clyde. New
York: Cambridge University Press, pp. 42–69.
Carson, L. M. Kit (1983) ‘Breathless Diary’, Film Comment, vol. 19, no. 3
(May–June), pp. 33–8.
Carter, Bill (2004) ‘Marooned Again with Gilligan’, The Age, 9 December, Green
Guide, p. 19.
Cawelti, John G. (ed.) (1973) Focus on Bonnie and Clyde. Englewood Cliffs, NJ:
Prentice-Hall.
Cazdyn, Eric (2002) The Flash of Capital: Film and Geopolitics in Japan. Durham,
NC: Duke University Press.
181
Christie, Ian (2002) ‘The Rules of the Game’, Sight and Sound, vol. 12, no. 9
(September), pp. 24–7.
Chute, David (1981) ‘Tropic of Kasdan’, Film Comment, vol. 17, no. 5
(September–October), pp. 49–56.
Clarkson, Wensley (1995) Quentin Tarantino: Shooting from the Hip. London:
Piatkus.
Clover, Carol (1987) ‘Her Body, Himself: Gender in the Slasher Film’,
Representations, no. 20, pp. 187–228.
Cockrell, Eddie (2002) ‘Good Thief’s Good Bet’, Variety, 16–22 September, p. 28.
Cohen, Paula Marantz (2001–02) ‘The Artist Pays Homage’, Hitchcock Annual,
pp. 127–32.
Combs, Richard (1980) ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, Monthly Film Bulletin, vol. 47,
no. 562 (November), p. 213.
Combs, Richard (1981) ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, Monthly Film
Bulletin, vol. 48, no. 568 (May), pp. 95–6.
Combs, Richard (1982) ‘Rev. of Detour’, Monthly Film Bulletin, vol. 49, no. 582
(July), pp. 145–6.
Combs, Richard (1990) ‘Rev. of Dick Tracy’, Monthly Film Bulletin, vol. 57, no. 679
(August), pp. 215–17.
Condon, Paul and Jim Sangster (1999) The Complete Hitchcock. London: Virgin.
Corrigan, Timothy (1991) A Cinema Without Walls: Movies and Culture After
Vietnam. New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press.
Corrigan, Timothy (1998) ‘Auteurs and the New Hollywood’, in Jon Lewis
(ed.), The New American Cinema. Durham, NC: Duke University Press,
pp. 38–63.
Corrigan, Timothy (2002) ‘Which Shakespeare to Love? Film, Fidelity, and the
Performance of Literature’, in Jim Collins (ed.), High-Pop: Making Culture into
Popular Entertainment. Oxford: Blackwell, pp. 155–81.
Culler, Jonathan (1975) ‘Defining Narrative Units’, in Roger Fowler (ed.), Style
and Structure in Literature: Essays in the New Stylistics. Oxford: Basil Blackwell,
pp. 123–42.
Culler, Jonathan (1981) The Pursuit of Signs: Semiotics, Literature, Deconstruction.
London: Routledge & Kegan Paul.
Cumbow, Robert C. (1987) Once Upon a Time: The Films of Sergio Leone.
Metuchen, NJ: Scarecrow Press.
Deleuze, Gilles (1989) Cinema 2: The Time-Image, trans. Hugh Tomlinson and
Robert Galeta. Minneapolis, MN: University of Minnesota Press.
Desowitz, Bill (2001) ‘New Apes, New Planet, Old Story: Simians Still Rule’, New
York Times, 13 May, p. 2A.3.
Dika, Vera (2003) Recycled Culture in Contemporary Art and Film: The Uses of
Nostalgia. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Diski, Jenny (1992) ‘The Shadow Within’, Sight and Sound, vol. 1, no. 10
(February), pp. 12–13.
Dowell, Pat (1992) ‘Rev. of Unforgiven’, Cineaste, vol. 19, nos. 2–3, pp. 72–3.
182
Druxman, Michael B. (1975) Make It Again, Sam: A Survey of Movie Remakes.
Cranbury, NJ: A. S. Barnes.
Durham, Carolyn A. (1998) Double Takes: Culture and Gender in French Films and
Their American Remakes. Hanover, NH: University Press of New England.
Eaton, Michael (1991) ‘Condemned to Repeats’, Sight and Sound, vol. 1, no. 8
(December), p. 4.
Eaton, Michael (1998) ‘Cinema and Television: From Eden to the Land of Nod?’,
in Elsaesser and Hoffmann (eds), Cinema Futures, pp. 137–42.
Ebert, Roger (1998) ‘Rev. of Psycho’, Chicago Sun Times, http://www.suntimes.com.
Ebert, Roger (2004) ‘Rev. of Dawn of the Dead’, Chicago Sun Times,
http://www.suntimes.com.
Eberwein, Robert (1998) ‘Remakes and Cultural Studies’, in Horton and
McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam, pp. 15–33.
Eco, Umberto (1985) ‘Innovation and Repetition: Between Modern and PostModern Aesthetics’, Daedalus, vol. 114, no. 4, pp. 161–84.
Eco, Umberto (1990) The Limits of Interpretation. Bloomington, IN: Indiana
University Press.
Eisner, Joel and David Krinsky (1984) Television Comedy Series: An Episode Guide
to 153 TV Sitcoms in Syndication. Jefferson, NC: McFarland.
Eisner, Ken (2001) ‘Rev. of Tortilla Soup’, Variety, 23–29 July, p. 19.
Elley, Derek (2001–02) ‘Rev. of Mean Machine’, Variety, 24 December–6 January,
p. 22.
Ellis, John (1992) Visible Fictions: Cinema, Television, Video, rev. edn. London:
Routledge.
Ellis, John (1998) ‘Cinema and Television: Laios and Oedipus’, in Elsaesser and
Hoffmann (eds), Cinema Futures, pp. 127–35.
Elsaesser, Thomas (1990) ‘The Institution Cinema: Industry, Commodity,
Audiences’, in Thomas Elsaesser with Adam Barker (eds), Early Cinema: Space,
Frame, Narrative. London: British Film Institute, pp. 153–73.
Elsaesser, Thomas (1998) ‘Fantasy Island: Dream Logic as Production Logic’, in
Elsaesser and Hoffmann (eds), Cinema Futures, pp. 143–58.
Elsaesser, Thomas and Kay Hoffmann (eds) (1998) Cinema Futures: Cain, Abel or
Cable? Amsterdam: Amsterdam University Press.
Elsasser [sic], Thomas (1975) ‘Two Decades in Another Country: Hollywood and
the Cinéphiles’, in C. W. E. Bigsby (ed.), Superculture: American Popular Culture
and Europe. London: Paul Elek, pp. 199–225.
Erickson, Todd (1996) ‘Kill Me Again: Movement becomes Genre’, in Alain
Silver and James Ursini (eds), Film Noir Reader. New York: Limelight,
pp. 307–29.
Falcon, Richard (2003) ‘Magnificent Obsession’, Sight and Sound, vol. 13, no. 3
(March), pp. 12–15.
Falkenberg, Pamela (1985) ‘ “Hollywood” and the “Art Cinema” as a Bipolar
Modeling System: A bout de souffle and Breathless’, Wide Angle, vol. 7, no. 3,
pp. 44–53.
183
Fassbinder, Rainer Werner (1992) ‘Imitation of Life: On the Films of Douglas
Sirk’, in Michael Töteberg and Leo A. Lensing (eds), Rainer Werner Fassbinder:
The Anarchy of the Imagination, trans. Krishna Winston. Baltimore, MD:
Johns Hopkins University Press, pp. 77–89.
Fish, Stanley (1980) Is There a Text in This Class? The Authority of Interpretive
Communities. Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press.
Floyd, Nigel (1994) ‘Quentin Tarantino: Blood Brother’, The Face, October,
pp. 92–9.
Forrest, Jennifer (2002) ‘The “Personal” Touch: The Original, the Remake, and
the Dupe in Early Cinema’, in Forrest and Koos (eds), Dead Ringers, pp. 89–126.
Forrest, Jennifer and Leonard R. Koos (eds) (2002) Dead Ringers: The Remake in
Theory and Practice. Albany, NY: State University of New York Press.
Foundas, Scott (2003) ‘Rev. of The Texas Chainsaw Massacre’, Variety, 20–26
October, p. 41.
Foundas, Scott (2004) ‘Rev. of Dawn of the Dead’, Variety, 22–28 March, p. 39.
Frayling, Christopher (2000) Sergio Leone: Something to Do with Death. London:
Faber & Faber.
Free, Erin and Peter Galvin (2001) ‘The Big Remake: Out of Time, Out of Place,
Out of Ideas’, Independent Filmmaker, no. 36, pp. 36–40.
Friedberg, Anne (1993) Window Shopping: Cinema and the Postmodern. Berkeley,
CA: University of California Press.
Friedman, Lester D. (ed.) (2000) Arthur Penn’s Bonnie and Clyde. New York:
Cambridge University Press.
Friedman, Lester D. (2000) Bonnie and Clyde. London: British Film Institute.
Friend, Tad (1998) ‘Copy Cats’, The New Yorker, 14 September, pp. 51–7.
Frow, John (1986) Marxism and Literary History. Oxford: Basil Blackwell.
Frow, John (1990) ‘Intertextuality and Ontology’, in Michael Worton and Judith
Still (eds), Intertextuality: Theories and Practices. Manchester: Manchester
University Press, pp. 45–55.
Frow, John (1999) ‘Rev. of Play It Again, Sam’, Screening the Past, no. 7, http://
www.latrobe.edu.au/screeningthepast/shorts/reviews/rev0799/jfbr7a.htm.
Gabbard, Krin (1998) ‘The Ethnic Oedipus: The Jazz Singer and Its Remakes’, in
Horton and McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam, pp. 95–114.
Galbraith, Stuart (2002) The Emperor and the Wolf: The Lives and Films of Akira
Kurosawa and Toshiro Mifune. London: Faber & Faber.
Gaudreault, André (1985) ‘The Infringement of Copyright Laws and Its Effects
(1900–1906)’, Framework, no. 29, pp. 2–14.
Georgakas, Dan (1998) ‘Robin Hood: From Roosevelt to Reagan’, in Horton and
McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam, pp. 70–9.
Grant, Catherine (2002) ‘Recognising Billy Budd in Beau Travail: Epistemology
and Hermeneutics of an Auteurist “Free” Adaptation’, Screen, vol. 43, no. 1,
pp. 57–73.
Greenberg, Harvey Roy (1991) ‘Raiders of the Lost Text: Remaking as Contested
Homage in Always’, Journal of Popular Film and Television, vol. 18, no. 4,
184
pp. 164–71; rpt. in Horton and McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam,
pp. 115–30.
Greene, Eric (1996) Planet of the Apes as American Myth: Race, Politics, and
Popular Culture. Hanover, NH: University Press of New England.
Grindstaff, Laura (2001) ‘A Pygmalion Tale Retold: Remaking La Femme Nikita’,
Camera Obscura, vol. 16, no. 2, pp. 133–75; revised and rpt. as ‘Pretty Woman
with a Gun: La Femme Nikita and the Textual Politics of “The Remake” ’, in
Forrest and Koos (eds), Dead Ringers, pp. 273–308.
Gunning, Tom (1981) ‘Weaving a Narrative: Style and Economic Background in
Griffith’s Biograph Films’, Quarterly Review of Film Studies, vol. 6, no. 1,
pp. 11–25.
‘Gus Van Sant vs. Alfred Hitchcock: A Psycho Dossier’ (2001–02), Hitchcock
Annual, pp. 125–58.
Halliday, Jon (1971) Sirk on Sirk. London: Secker & Warburg.
Hammett, Dashiell [1929] (1982) Red Harvest, in Dashiell Hammett: The Four
Great Novels. London: Picador, pp. 5–192.
Har. (1981) ‘Rev. of The Postman Always Rings Twice’, Variety, 18 March, p. 133.
Har. (1984) ‘Rev. of Against All Odds’, Variety, 15 February, p. 24.
Hark, Ina Rae (1999) ‘The Wrath of the Original Cast: Translating Embodied
Television Characters to Other Media’, in Deborah Cartmell and Imelda
Whelehan (eds), Adaptations: From Text to Screen, Screen to Text. London:
Routledge, pp. 172–84.
Harkness, John (1999) ‘Psycho Path’, http://www.now.com.
Harries, Dan (2000) Film Parody, London: British Film Institute.
Harris, Sue (2003) ‘Rev. of The Truth About Charlie’, Sight and Sound, vol. 13, no. 8
(August), pp. 60–2.
Harvey, Stephen (1980) ‘Can’t Stop the Remakes’, Film Comment, vol. 16, no. 5
(September–October), pp. 50–3.
Hawker, Philippa (2000) ‘Rev. of Mission: Impossible 2’, The Age, 1 June, Today, p. 5.
Hillier, Jim (1992) The New Hollywood. New York: Continuum.
Hirsch, Foster (1999) Detours and Lost Highways: A Map of Neo-Noir. New York:
Limelight.
Hoberman, J. (1980) ‘Rev. of Dressed to Kill’, Village Voice, 22–29 July, pp. 42
and 44.
Hoberman, J. (1985) ‘Ten Years That Shook the World’, American Film, June,
pp. 34–59.
Hoberman, J. (1991) ‘Facing the Nineties’, in Vulgar Modernism: Writing on
Movies and Other Media. Philadelphia: Temple University Press, pp. 1–10.
Hoberman, J. (1992) ‘Sacred and Profane’, Sight and Sound, vol. 1, no. 10
(February), pp. 8–11.
Hoberman, J. (2002) ‘Sign of the Times’, Village Voice, 6–12 November,
http://www.villagevoice.com/issues/0245/hoberman.php.
Hoberman, J. (2003) ‘They’re Back’, Village Voice, 30 June, http://
www.villagevoice.com/issues/0327/hoberman.php.
185
Horton, Andrew and Stuart Y. McDougal (eds) (1998) Play It Again, Sam:
Retakes on Remakes. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
Hughes, Simon (2001) ‘Apocalypse now. Please!’, The Age, 26 January, Today, p. 1.
Iampolski, Mikhail (1998) The Memory of Tiresias: Intertextuality and Film, trans.
Harsha Ram. Berkeley, CA: University of California Press.
Indiana, Gary et al. (1995) ‘Pulp the Hype: On the Q.T.’, Artforum March,
pp. 62–7 and 108–10.
Jameson, Fredric (1984) ‘Postmodernism, or The Cultural Logic of Late
Capitalism’, New Left Review, no. 146, pp. 53–92.
Jameson, Fredric (1985) ‘Postmodernism and Consumer Society’, in Hal Foster
(ed.), Postmodern Culture. London: Pluto, pp. 111–25.
Javna, John and Gordon Javna (1983) 60s! New York: St. Martin’s Press.
Jenkins, Henry (2000) ‘Reception Theory and Audience Research: The Mystery
of the Vampire’s Kiss’, in Christine Gledhill and Linda Williams (eds),
Reinventing Film Studies. London: Arnold, pp. 165–82.
Jenkins, Steve (1982) ‘Rev. of Body Heat’, Monthly Film Bulletin, vol. 49, no. 576
(January), pp. 3–4.
Johnson, Vida T. and Graham Petrie (1994) The Films of Andrei Tarkovsky:
A Visual Fugue. Bloomington, IN: Indiana University Press.
Johnson, Vida and Graham Petrie (2003) ‘Ethical Exploration’, Sight and Sound,
vol. 13, no. 2 (February), pp. 17–18.
Jordan, Neil (2003) ‘Double Down’, Interview by Jamie Russell, Sight and Sound,
vol. 13, no. 10 (October), p. 78.
Jowett, Garth (1976) Film: The Democratic Art. Boston: Little, Brown.
Kael, Pauline (1980) ‘Master Spy, Master Seducer’, The New Yorker, August 4,
pp. 68–71.
Kael, Pauline (1987) Taking It All In. London: Arena.
Kapsis, Robert E. (1992) Hitchcock: The Making of a Reputation. Chicago:
University of Chicago Press.
Kehr, Dave (1984) ‘Hitch’s Riddle’, Film Comment, vol. 20, no. 3 (May–June),
pp. 9–18.
Keller, Alexandra (1999) ‘ “Size Does Matter”: Notes on Titanic and James
Cameron as Blockbuster Auteur’, in Kevin S. Sandler and Gaylyn Studlar (eds),
Titanic: Anatomy of a Blockbuster. New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University
Press, pp. 132–54.
Kermode, Mark (2003) ‘What a Carve Up!’, Sight and Sound, vol. 13, no. 12
(December), pp. 12–16.
Kerr, Paul (1983) ‘My Name Is Joseph H. Lewis’, Screen, vol. 24, no. 4–5
(July–October), pp. 48–66.
Kinder, Marsha (1974) ‘The Return of the Outlaw Couple’, Film Quarterly,
vol. 27, no. 4, pp. 2–10.
Kitses, Jim (1996) Gun Crazy. London: British Film Institute.
Kline, T. Jefferson (1992) Screening the Text: Intertextuality in New Wave French
Cinema. Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press.
186
Klinger, Barbara (1989) ‘Digressions at the Cinema: Reception and Mass
Culture’, Cinema Journal, vol. 28, no. 4, pp. 3–19.
Koehler, Robert (2002) ‘Rev. of Rollerball’, Variety, 11–17 February, p. 41.
Koehler, Robert (2003) ‘Jazzy Job Works as Classy Caper’, Variety, 2–8 June, p. 42.
Kolker, Robert P. (1998) ‘Algebraic Figures: Recalculating the Hitchcock
Formula’, in Horton and McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam, pp. 34–51.
Krohn, Bill (2000) Hitchcock at Work. London: Phaidon.
Krutnik, Frank (1982) ‘Desire, Transgression and James M. Cain’, Screen, vol. 23,
no. 1 (May–June), pp. 31–44.
Lafferty, William (1990) ‘Feature Films on Prime-Time Television’, in Tino
Balio (ed.), Hollywood in the Age of Television. Boston: Unwin Hyman,
pp. 235–56.
Leitch, Thomas M. (1990) ‘Twice-Told Tales: The Rhetoric of the Remake’,
Literature/Film Quarterly, vol. 18, no. 3, pp. 138–49; revised and rpt. as ‘TwiceTold Tales: Disavowal and the Rhetoric of the Remake’, in Forrest and Koos
(eds), Dead Ringers, pp. 37–62.
Levy, Shawn (2002) ‘Nice’n’Easy’, Sight and Sound, vol. 12, no. 2 (February),
pp. 14–16.
Lor. (1987) ‘Rev. of No Way Out’, Variety, 12 August, p. 12.
Lor. (1988) ‘Rev. of D.O.A.’, Variety, 16 March, p. 14.
Lowenstein, Adam (2004) ‘The Master, The Maniac, and Frenzy’, in Richard
Allen and Sam Ishii-Gonzàles (eds), Hitchcock: Past and Future. London:
Routledge, pp. 179–92.
Lubin, David M. (1999) Titanic. London: British Film Institute.
McCarthy, Phillip (2000) ‘Where Angels Don’t Fear to Tread’, The Sunday Age,
19 November, Review, p. 7.
McCarthy, Todd (2001) ‘Breezy Ocean’s Could Make Splash in B.O. Pool’,
Variety, 3–9 December, p. 33.
McCarthy, Todd (2001) ‘Fox Wages Gorilla Warfare on B.O. with Apes Redo’,
Variety, 30 July–5 August, p. 17.
McCarthy, Todd (2001) ‘Rev. of Vanilla Sky’, Variety, 10–16 December, p. 32.
McCarthy, Todd (2002) ‘Clooney’s Star Shines in Soderbergh Solaris’, Variety,
25 November–1 December, p. 22.
McCarthy, Todd (2002) ‘Lyne’s Cool Unfaithful May Warm Up Fox’s B.O.’,
Variety, 6–12 May, p. 41.
McCarthy, Todd (2002) ‘Remake of Japan Horror Pic Sounds a Tinny Ring’,
Variety, 7–13 October, p. 21.
McCarthy, Todd (2002) ‘Stylish Charade Redo Pushes the Truth’, Variety,
23 October–3 November, p. 31.
McCarthy, Todd (2002) ‘Time Machine Hits Snag in Distant Future’, Variety
11–17 March, p. 31.
McDougal, Stuart Y. (1998) ‘The Director Who Knew Too Much: Hitchcock
Remakes Himself ’, in Horton and McDougal (eds), Play It Again, Sam,
pp. 52–69.
187
McElwee, John P. (1989) ‘Theatrical Re-issues, part 1’, Films in Review,
December, pp. 593–6.
McElwee, John P. (1990) ‘Theatrical Re-issues, part 2’, Films in Review,
January–February, pp. 21–5.
McHoul, Alec and Tom O’Regan (1992) ‘Towards a Paralogics of Textual
Technologies: Batman, Glasnost and Relativism in Cultural Studies’, Southern
Review, vol. 25, no. 1, pp. 5–26.
Macksey, Richard (1997) ‘Foreword’, in Gérard Genette, Paratexts: Thresholds of
Interpretation, trans. Jane E. Lewin. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
pp. xi–xxii.
McNeil, Alex (1996) Total Television: The Comprehensive Guide to Programming
from 1948 to the Present, 4th edn. Harmondsworth: Penguin.
Maddox, Garry (2003) ‘Television a Tomb with a View for Lazy Hollywood
Producers’, The Age, 25 October, n.p.
‘Make Mine a Double’ (1990) National Film Theatre Programme, February,
pp. 26–7.
‘Make Mine a Double’ (1990) National Film Theatre Programme, March, pp. 30–1.
Marc, David (1989) Comic Visions: Television Comedy and American Culture.
Boston: Unwin Hyman.
Marc, David (1994) ‘Sibling Rivalry’, Sight and Sound, vol. 4, no. 7 (July), pp. 6–9.
Marc, David (1996) Demographic Vistas: Television in American Culture, rev. edn.
Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press.
Marc, David and Robert J. Thompson (1992) Prime Time, Prime Movers. Boston:
Little, Brown.
Marie, Michel (2000) ‘ “It Really Makes You Sick!”: Jean-Luc Godard’s A bout de
souffle’, in Susan Hayward and Ginette Vincendeau (eds), French Film: Texts
and Contexts. London: Routledge, pp. 158–73.
Marie, Michel (2003) The French New Wave: An Artistic School, trans. Richard
Neupert. London: Blackwell.
Martin, Adrian (1997) ‘Violently Happy: Gun Crazy’, Metro, no. 109, pp. 57–8.
Martin, Adrian (1999) ‘Norman’s not Stormin’, The Age, 28 January, Living Arts,
p. 20.
Martin, Adrian (2003) ‘Soderbergh’s Planet Casts Psychic Spell’, The Age,
27 February, p. 5.
Martin, Richard (1997) Mean Streets and Raging Bulls: The Legacy of Film Noir
in Contemporary American Cinema. Lanham, MD: Scarecrow.
Maslin, Janet (1998) ‘hanks&ryan@romance.com’, New York Times, 18 December,
p. E.1:1.
Mazdon, Lucy (2000) Encore Hollywood: Remaking French Cinema. London:
British Film Institute.
Medhurst, Andy (2001) ‘Rev. of Charlie’s Angels’, Sight and Sound, vol. 11, no. 1
(January), pp. 43–4.
Meehan, Eileen R. (1991) ‘ “Holy Commodity Fetish, Batman!”: The Political
Economy of a Commercial Intertext’, in Roberta E. Pearson and William